|
Luke
|
Ѿ Лꙋкѝ
|
|
Chapter 1
|
Глава́ а҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Forasmuch as many have taken in hand to draw up a narrative concerning those matters which have been fulfilled among us, |
|
|
2
|
2
|
| even as they delivered them unto us, who from the beginning were eyewitnesses and ministers of the word, | ꙗ҆́коже преда́ша на́мъ, и҆́же и҆спе́рва самови́дцы и҆ слꙋ́ги бы́вшїи словесѐ: |
|
3
|
3
|
| it seemed good to me also, having traced the course of all things accurately from the first, to write unto thee in order, most excellent Theophilus; | и҆зво́лисѧ и҆ мнѣ̀ послѣ́довавшꙋ вы́ше всѧ̑ и҆спы́тнѡ, порѧ́дꙋ писа́ти тебѣ̀, держа́вный ѳеофі́ле, |
|
4
|
4
|
| that thou mightest know the certainty concerning the things wherein thou wast instructed. | да разꙋмѣ́еши, ѡ҆ ни́хже наꙋчи́лсѧ є҆сѝ словесѣ́хъ оу҆твержде́нїе. |
|
5
|
5
|
| There was in the days of Herod, the king of Judea, a certain priest named Zechariah, of the course of Abijah: and his wife was of the daughters of Aaron, and her name was Elizabeth. |
|
|
6
|
6
|
| And they were both righteous before God, walking in all the commandments and ordinances of the Lord blameless. | Бѣ́ста же првⷣна ѻ҆́ба пред̾ бг҃омъ, ходѧ̑ща во всѣ́хъ за́повѣдехъ и҆ ѡ҆правда́нїихъ гдⷭ҇нихъ безпорѡ́чна. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And they had no child, because that Elizabeth was barren, and they both were now well stricken in years. | И҆ не бѣ̀ и҆́ма ча́да, поне́же є҆лїсаве́тъ бѣ̀ непло́ды, и҆ ѻ҆́ба заматорѣ̑вша во дне́хъ свои́хъ бѣ́ста. |
|
8
|
8
|
| Now it came to pass, while he executed the priest’s office before God in the order of his course, | Бы́сть же слꙋжа́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ въ чинꙋ̀ чреды̀ своеѧ̀ пред̾ бг҃омъ, |
|
9
|
9
|
| according to the custom of the priest’s office, his lot was to enter into the temple of the Lord and burn incense. | по ѡ҆бы́чаю свѧще́нничества ключи́сѧ є҆мꙋ̀ покади́ти, вше́дшꙋ въ це́рковь гдⷭ҇ню: |
|
10
|
10
|
| And the whole multitude of the people were praying without at the hour of incense. | и҆ всѐ мно́жество люде́й бѣ̀ моли́твꙋ дѣ́ѧ внѣ̀, въ го́дъ [во вре́мѧ] ѳѷмїа́ма: |
|
11
|
11
|
| And there appeared unto him an angel of the Lord standing on the right side of the altar of incense. | ꙗ҆ви́сѧ же є҆мꙋ̀ а҆́гг҃лъ гдⷭ҇ень, стоѧ̀ ѡ҆деснꙋ́ю ѻ҆лтарѧ̀ кади́лнагѡ: |
|
12
|
12
|
| And Zechariah was troubled when he saw him, and fear fell upon him. | и҆ смꙋти́сѧ заха́рїа ви́дѣвъ, и҆ стра́хъ нападѐ на́нь. |
|
13
|
13
|
| But the angel said unto him, Fear not, Zechariah: because thy supplication is heard, and thy wife Elizabeth shall bear thee a son, and thou shalt call his name John. | Рече́ же къ немꙋ̀ а҆́гг҃лъ: не бо́йсѧ, заха́рїе: занѐ оу҆слы́шана бы́сть моли́тва твоѧ̀, и҆ жена̀ твоѧ̀ є҆лїсаве́тъ роди́тъ сы́на тебѣ̀, и҆ нарече́ши и҆́мѧ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆ѡа́ннъ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And thou shalt have joy and gladness; and many shall rejoice at his birth. | И҆ бꙋ́детъ тебѣ̀ ра́дость и҆ весе́лїе, и҆ мно́зи ѡ҆ рождествѣ̀ є҆гѡ̀ возра́дꙋютсѧ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| For he shall be great in the sight of the Lord, and he shall drink no wine nor strong drink; and he shall be filled with the Holy Spirit, even from his mother’s womb. | Бꙋ́детъ бо ве́лїй пред̾ гдⷭ҇емъ: и҆ вїна̀ и҆ сїке́ра не и҆́мать пи́ти, и҆ дх҃а ст҃а́гѡ и҆спо́лнитсѧ є҆щѐ и҆з̾ чре́ва ма́тере своеѧ̀: |
|
16
|
16
|
| And many of the children of Israel shall he turn unto the Lord their God. | и҆ мно́гихъ ѿ сынѡ́въ і҆и҃левыхъ ѡ҆брати́тъ ко гдⷭ҇ꙋ бг҃ꙋ и҆́хъ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And he shall go before his face in the spirit and power of Elijah, to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and the disobedient to walk in the wisdom of the just; to make ready for the Lord a people prepared for him. | И҆ то́й пред̾и́детъ пред̾ ни́мъ дꙋ́хомъ и҆ си́лою и҆лїино́ю, ѡ҆брати́ти сердца̀ ѻ҆тцє́мъ на ча̑да, и҆ проти̑вныѧ въ мꙋ́дрости пра́ведныхъ, оу҆гото́вати гдⷭ҇ви лю́ди совершє́ны. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And Zechariah said unto the angel, Whereby shall I know this? for I am an old man, and my wife well stricken in years. | И҆ речѐ заха́рїа ко а҆́гг҃лꙋ: по чесомꙋ̀ разꙋмѣ́ю сїѐ; а҆́зъ бо є҆́смь ста́ръ, и҆ жена̀ моѧ̀ заматорѣ́вши во дне́хъ свои́хъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And the angel answered and said unto him, I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God; and I was sent to speak unto thee, and to bring thee these good tidings. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ а҆́гг҃лъ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: а҆́зъ є҆́смь гаврїи́лъ предстоѧ́й пред̾ бг҃омъ, и҆ по́сланъ є҆́смь глаго́лати къ тебѣ̀ и҆ благовѣсти́ти тебѣ̀ сїѧ̑: |
|
20
|
20
|
| And behold, thou shalt be silent and not able to speak, until the day that these things shall come to pass, because thou believedst not my words, which shall be fulfilled in their season. | и҆ сѐ бꙋ́деши молчѧ̀ и҆ не могі́й проглаго́лати, до негѡ́же днѐ бꙋ́дꙋтъ сїѧ̑: занѐ не вѣ́ровалъ є҆сѝ словесє́мъ мои̑мъ, ꙗ҆́же сбꙋ́дꙋтсѧ во вре́мѧ своѐ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And the people were waiting for Zechariah, and they marveled while he tarried in the temple. | И҆ бѣ́ша лю́дїе ждꙋ́ще заха́рїю: и҆ чꙋдѧ́хꙋсѧ коснѧ́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ въ це́ркви. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And when he came out, he could not speak unto them: and they perceived that he had seen a vision in the temple: and he continued making signs unto them, and remained dumb. | И҆зше́дъ же не можа́ше глаго́лати къ ни̑мъ: и҆ разꙋмѣ́ша, ꙗ҆́кѡ видѣ́нїе ви́дѣ въ це́ркви: и҆ то́й бѣ̀ помава́ѧ и҆̀мъ, и҆ пребыва́ше нѣ́мъ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And it came to pass, when the days of his ministration were fulfilled, he departed unto his house. | И҆ бы́сть ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆спо́лнишасѧ дні́е слꙋ́жбы є҆гѡ̀, и҆́де въ до́мъ сво́й. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And after these days Elizabeth his wife conceived; and she hid herself five months, saying, | (Заⷱ҇ г҃.) По си́хъ же дне́хъ зача́тъ є҆лїсаве́тъ жена̀ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ таѧ́шесѧ мѣ̑сѧцъ пѧ́ть, глаго́лющи: |
|
25
|
25
|
| Thus hath the Lord done unto me in the days wherein he looked upon me, to take away my reproach among men. | ꙗ҆́кѡ та́кѡ мнѣ̀ сотворѝ гдⷭ҇ь во дни̑, въ нѧ́же призрѣ̀ ѿѧ́ти поноше́нїе моѐ въ человѣ́цѣхъ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| Now in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent by God unto a city of Galilee, named Nazareth, | Въ мѣ́сѧцъ же шесты́й по́сланъ бы́сть а҆́гг҃лъ гаврїи́лъ ѿ бг҃а во гра́дъ галїле́йскїй, є҆мꙋ́же и҆́мѧ назаре́тъ, |
|
27
|
27
|
| to a virgin betrothed to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David; and the virgin’s name was Mary. | къ дв҃ѣ ѡ҆брꙋче́ннѣй мꙋ́жеви, є҆мꙋ́же и҆́мѧ і҆ѡ́сифъ, ѿ до́мꙋ дв҃дова: и҆ и҆́мѧ дв҃ѣ мр҃їа́мь. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And the angel came in unto her, and said, Hail, thou that art highly favored, the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou among women. | И҆ вше́дъ къ не́й а҆́гг҃лъ речѐ: ра́дꙋйсѧ, блгⷣтнаѧ: гдⷭ҇ь съ тобо́ю: блгⷭ҇ве́на ты̀ въ жена́хъ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And when she saw him, she was greatly troubled at his saying, and cast in her mind what manner of salutation this might be. | Ѻ҆на́ же ви́дѣвши смꙋти́сѧ ѡ҆ словесѝ є҆гѡ̀ и҆ помышлѧ́ше, каково̀ бꙋ́детъ цѣлова́нїе сїѐ. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And the angel said unto her, Fear not, Mary: for thou hast found favor with God. | И҆ речѐ а҆́гг҃лъ є҆́й: не бо́йсѧ, мр҃їа́мь: ѡ҆брѣла́ бо є҆сѝ блгⷣть оу҆ бг҃а. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name JESUS. | И҆ сѐ зачне́ши во чре́вѣ, и҆ роди́ши сн҃а, и҆ нарече́ши и҆́мѧ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ. |
|
32
|
32
|
| He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the Most High: and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David: | Се́й бꙋ́детъ ве́лїй, и҆ сн҃ъ вы́шнѧгѡ нарече́тсѧ: и҆ да́стъ є҆мꙋ̀ гдⷭ҇ь бг҃ъ прⷭ҇то́лъ дв҃да ѻ҆тца̀ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
33
|
33
|
| and he shall reign over the house of Jacob forever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end. | и҆ воцр҃и́тсѧ въ домꙋ̀ і҆а́кѡвли во вѣ́ки, и҆ црⷭ҇твїю є҆гѡ̀ не бꙋ́детъ конца̀. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And Mary said unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a man? | Рече́ же мр҃їа́мь ко а҆́гг҃лꙋ: ка́кѡ бꙋ́детъ сїѐ, и҆дѣ́же мꙋ́жа не зна́ю; |
|
35
|
35
|
| And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Spirit shall come upon thee, and the power of the Most High shall overshadow thee: wherefore also the holy thing which is begotten shall be called the Son of God. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ а҆́гг҃лъ речѐ є҆́й: дх҃ъ ст҃ы́й на́йдетъ на тѧ̀, и҆ си́ла вы́шнѧгѡ ѡ҆сѣни́тъ тѧ̀: тѣ́мже и҆ ражда́емое ст҃о нарече́тсѧ сн҃ъ бж҃їй: |
|
36
|
36
|
| And behold, Elizabeth thy kinswoman, she also hath conceived a son in her old age; and this is the sixth month with her that was called barren. | и҆ сѐ, є҆лїсаве́тъ ю҆́жика твоѧ̀, и҆ та̀ зача́тъ сы́на въ ста́рости свое́й: и҆ се́й мѣ́сѧцъ шесты́й є҆́сть є҆́й нарица́емѣй непло́ды: |
|
37
|
37
|
| For nothing shall be impossible with God. | ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆знемо́жетъ оу҆ бг҃а всѧ́къ глаго́лъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And Mary said, Behold, the handmaid of the Lord; be it unto me according to thy word. And the angel departed from her. | Рече́ же мр҃їа́мь: сѐ раба̀ гдⷭ҇нѧ: бꙋ́ди мнѣ̀ по глаго́лꙋ твоемꙋ̀. И҆ ѿи́де ѿ неѧ̀ а҆́гг҃лъ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And Mary arose in these days and went into the hill country with haste, into a city of Judah; | (Заⷱ҇ д҃.) Воста́вши же мр҃їа́мь во дни̑ ты̑ѧ, и҆́де въ гѡ́рнѧѧ со тща́нїемъ, во гра́дъ і҆ꙋ́довъ: |
|
40
|
40
|
| and entered into the house of Zechariah and saluted Elizabeth. | и҆ вни́де въ до́мъ заха́рїинъ, и҆ цѣлова̀ є҆лїсаве́тъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And it came to pass, when Elizabeth heard the salutation of Mary, the babe leaped in her womb; and Elizabeth was filled with the Holy Spirit; | И҆ бы́сть ꙗ҆́кѡ оу҆слы́ша є҆лїсаве́тъ цѣлова́нїе мр҃і́ино, взыгра́сѧ младе́нецъ во чре́вѣ є҆ѧ̀: и҆ и҆спо́лнисѧ дх҃а ст҃а є҆лїсаве́тъ, |
|
42
|
42
|
| and she spake out with a loud voice, and said, Blessed art thou among women, and blessed is the fruit of thy womb. | и҆ возопѝ гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ, и҆ речѐ: блгⷭ҇ве́на ты̀ въ жена́хъ, и҆ блгⷭ҇ве́нъ пло́дъ чре́ва твоегѡ̀: |
|
43
|
43
|
| And whence is this to me, that the mother of my Lord should come unto me? | и҆ ѿкꙋ́дꙋ мнѣ̀ сїѐ, да прїи́детъ мт҃и гдⷭ҇а моегѡ̀ ко мнѣ̀; |
|
44
|
44
|
| For behold, when the voice of thy salutation came into mine ears, the babe leaped in my womb for joy. | се́ бо, ꙗ҆́кѡ бы́сть гла́съ цѣлова́нїѧ твоегѡ̀ во оу҆́шїю моє́ю, взыгра́сѧ младе́нецъ ра́дощами во чре́вѣ мое́мъ. |
|
45
|
45
|
| And blessed is she that believed; for there shall be a fulfillment of the things which have been spoken to her from the Lord. | И҆ бл҃же́нна вѣ́ровавшаѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ бꙋ́детъ соверше́нїе глагѡ́ланнымъ є҆́й ѿ гдⷭ҇а. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And Mary said, My soul doth magnify the Lord, | И҆ речѐ мр҃їа́мь: вели́читъ дш҃а̀ моѧ̀ гдⷭ҇а, |
|
47
|
47
|
| And my spirit hath rejoiced in God my Savior. | и҆ возра́довасѧ дх҃ъ мо́й ѡ҆ бз҃ѣ сп҃сѣ мое́мъ: |
|
48
|
48
|
| For he hath looked upon the low estate of his handmaid: For behold, from henceforth all generations shall call me blessed. | ꙗ҆́кѡ призрѣ̀ на смире́нїе рабы̀ своеѧ̀: се́ бо, ѿнн҃ѣ оу҆блажа́тъ мѧ̀ всѝ ро́ди: |
|
49
|
49
|
| For he that is mighty hath done to me great things; And holy is his name. | ꙗ҆́кѡ сотворѝ мнѣ̀ вели́чїе си́льный, и҆ ст҃о и҆́мѧ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
50
|
50
|
| And his mercy is unto generations of generations On them that fear him. | и҆ млⷭ҇ть є҆гѡ̀ въ ро́ды родѡ́въ боѧ́щымсѧ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
51
|
51
|
| He hath shown strength with his arm; He hath scattered the proud in the imagination of their heart. | сотворѝ держа́вꙋ мы́шцею свое́ю: расточѝ гѡ́рдыѧ мы́слїю се́рдца и҆́хъ: |
|
52
|
52
|
| He hath put down princes from their thrones, And hath exalted them of low degree. | низложѝ си̑льныѧ со престѡ́лъ, и҆ вознесѐ смирє́нныѧ: |
|
53
|
53
|
| The hungry he hath filled with good things; And the rich he hath sent empty away. | а҆́лчꙋщыѧ и҆спо́лни бла̑гъ, и҆ богатѧ́щыѧсѧ ѿпꙋстѝ тщы̀. |
|
54
|
54
|
| He hath given help to Israel his servant, That he might remember mercy | Воспрїѧ́тъ і҆и҃лѧ ѻ҆́трока своего̀, помѧнꙋ́ти млⷭ҇ти, |
|
55
|
55
|
| (As he spake unto our fathers) Toward Abraham and his seed forever. | ꙗ҆́коже глаго́ла ко ѻ҆тцє́мъ на́шымъ, а҆враа́мꙋ и҆ сѣ́мени є҆гѡ̀ до вѣ́ка. |
|
56
|
56
|
| And Mary abode with her about three months, and returned unto her house. | Пребы́сть же мр҃їа́мь съ не́ю ꙗ҆́кѡ трѝ мѣ́сѧцы и҆ возврати́сѧ въ до́мъ сво́й. |
|
57
|
57
|
| Now Elizabeth’s time was fulfilled that she should be delivered; and she brought forth a son. | Є҆лїсаве́ти же и҆спо́лнисѧ вре́мѧ роди́ти є҆́й, и҆ родѝ сы́на. |
|
58
|
58
|
| And her neighbors and her kinsfolk heard that the Lord had magnified his mercy toward her; and they rejoiced with her. | И҆ слы́шаша ѡ҆́крестъ живꙋ́щїи и҆ оу҆́жики є҆ѧ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ возвели́чилъ є҆́сть гдⷭ҇ь млⷭ҇ть свою̀ съ не́ю: и҆ ра́довахꙋсѧ съ не́ю. |
|
59
|
59
|
| And it came to pass on the eighth day, that they came to circumcise the child; and they would have called him Zechariah, after the name of his father. | И҆ бы́сть во ѻ҆смы́й де́нь, прїидо́ша ѡ҆брѣ́зати ѻ҆троча̀, и҆ нарица́хꙋ є҆̀ и҆́менемъ ѻ҆тца̀ є҆гѡ̀, заха́рїю. |
|
60
|
60
|
| And his mother answered and said, Not so; but he shall be called John. | И҆ ѿвѣща́вши ма́ти є҆гѡ̀ речѐ: нѝ, но да нарече́тсѧ і҆ѡа́ннъ. |
|
61
|
61
|
| And they said unto her, There is none among thy kindred that is called by this name. | И҆ рѣ́ша къ не́й, ꙗ҆́кѡ никто́же є҆́сть въ родствѣ̀ твое́мъ, и҆́же нарица́етсѧ и҆́менемъ тѣ́мъ. |
|
62
|
62
|
| And they made signs to his father, what he would have him called. | И҆ помава́хꙋ ѻ҆тцꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀, є҆́же ка́кѡ бы хотѣ́лъ нарещѝ є҆̀. |
|
63
|
63
|
| And he asked for a writing tablet, and wrote, saying, His name is John. And they marveled all. | И҆ и҆спро́шь дщи́цꙋ, написа̀, глаго́лѧ: і҆ѡа́ннъ бꙋ́детъ и҆́мѧ є҆мꙋ̀. И҆ чꙋдѧ́хꙋсѧ всѝ. |
|
64
|
64
|
| And his mouth was opened immediately, and his tongue loosed, and he spake, blessing God. | Ѿверзо́шасѧ же оу҆ста̀ є҆гѡ̀ а҆́бїе и҆ ѧ҆зы́къ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ глаго́лаше, благословѧ̀ бг҃а. |
|
65
|
65
|
| And fear came on all that dwelt round about them: and all these sayings were noised abroad throughout all the hill country of Judea. | И҆ бы́сть на всѣ́хъ стра́хъ живꙋ́щихъ ѡ҆́крестъ и҆́хъ: и҆ во все́й странѣ̀ і҆ꙋде́йстѣй повѣ́даеми бѧ́хꙋ всѝ глаго́ли сі́и. |
|
66
|
66
|
| And all that heard them laid them up in their heart, saying, What then shall this child be? And the hand of the Lord was with him. | И҆ положи́ша всѝ слы́шавшїи въ се́рдцѣ свое́мъ, глаго́люще: что̀ оу҆́бѡ ѻ҆троча̀ сїѐ бꙋ́детъ; И҆ рꙋка̀ гдⷭ҇нѧ бѣ̀ съ ни́мъ. |
|
67
|
67
|
| And his father Zechariah was filled with the Holy Spirit, and prophesied, saying, | И҆ заха́рїа ѻ҆те́цъ є҆гѡ̀ и҆спо́лнисѧ дх҃а ст҃а, и҆ проро́чествова, глаго́лѧ: |
|
68
|
68
|
| Blessed be the Lord, the God of Israel; For he hath visited and wrought redemption for his people, | блгⷭ҇ве́нъ гдⷭ҇ь бг҃ъ і҆и҃левъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ посѣтѝ и҆ сотворѝ и҆збавле́нїе лю́демъ свои̑мъ: |
|
69
|
69
|
| And hath raised up a horn of salvation for us In the house of his servant David | и҆ воздви́же ро́гъ спⷭ҇нїѧ на́мъ, въ домꙋ̀ дв҃да ѻ҆́трока своегѡ̀: |
|
70
|
70
|
| (As he spake by the mouth of his holy prophets that have been from of old), | ꙗ҆́коже глаго́ла оу҆сты̀ ст҃ы́хъ сꙋ́щихъ ѿ вѣ́ка прⷪ҇рѡ́къ є҆гѡ̀, |
|
71
|
71
|
| Salvation from our enemies, and from the hand of all that hate us; | спⷭ҇нїе ѿ вра̑гъ на́шихъ и҆ и҆з̾ рꙋкѝ всѣ́хъ ненави́дѧщихъ на́съ: |
|
72
|
72
|
| To show mercy toward our fathers, And to remember his holy covenant; | сотвори́ти млⷭ҇ть со ѻ҆тцы̑ на́шими и҆ помѧнꙋ́ти завѣ́тъ ст҃ы́й сво́й, |
|
73
|
73
|
| The oath which he sware unto Abraham our father, To grant unto us | клѧ́твꙋ, є҆́юже клѧ́тсѧ ко а҆враа́мꙋ ѻ҆тцꙋ̀ на́шемꙋ, да́ти на́мъ, |
|
74
|
74
|
| that we being delivered out of the hand of our enemies Should serve him without fear, | без̾ стра́ха, и҆з̾ рꙋкѝ вра̑гъ на́шихъ и҆зба́вльшымсѧ, |
|
75
|
75
|
| In holiness and righteousness before him all the days of our life. | слꙋжи́ти є҆мꙋ̀ преподо́бїемъ и҆ пра́вдою пред̾ ни́мъ всѧ̑ дни̑ живота̀ на́шегѡ. |
|
76
|
76
|
| And thou, child, shalt be called the prophet of the Most High: For thou shalt go before the face of the Lord to make ready his ways; | И҆ ты̀, ѻ҆троча̀, прⷪ҇ро́къ вы́шнѧгѡ нарече́шисѧ: пред̾и́деши бо пред̾ лице́мъ гдⷭ҇нимъ, оу҆гото́вати пꙋти̑ є҆гѡ̀, |
|
77
|
77
|
| To give knowledge of salvation unto his people In the remission of their sins, | да́ти ра́зꙋмъ спⷭ҇нїѧ лю́демъ є҆гѡ̀, во ѡ҆ставле́нїе грѣ̑хъ и҆́хъ, |
|
78
|
78
|
| Because of the tender mercy of our God, Whereby the dayspring from on high hath visited us, | милосе́рдїѧ ра́ди млⷭ҇ти бг҃а на́шегѡ, въ ни́хже посѣти́лъ є҆́сть на́съ восто́къ свы́ше, |
|
79
|
79
|
| To shine upon them that sit in darkness and the shadow of death; To guide our feet into the way of peace. | просвѣти́ти во тмѣ̀ и҆ сѣ́ни сме́ртнѣй сѣдѧ́щыѧ, напра́вити но́ги на́шѧ на пꙋ́ть ми́ренъ. |
|
80
|
80
|
| And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the deserts till the day of his showing unto Israel. | Ѻ҆троча́ же растѧ́ше и҆ крѣплѧ́шесѧ дꙋ́хомъ: и҆ бѣ̀ въ пꙋсты́нехъ до днѐ ꙗ҆вле́нїѧ своегѡ̀ ко і҆и҃лю. |
|
Chapter 2
|
Глава́ в҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now it came to pass in those days, there went out a decree from Caesar Augustus, that all the world should be enrolled. | (Заⷱ҇ е҃.) Бы́сть же во дни̑ ты̑ѧ, и҆зы́де повелѣ́нїе ѿ ке́сарѧ а҆́ѵгꙋста написа́ти всю̀ вселе́ннꙋю. |
|
2
|
2
|
| This was the first enrollment made when Quirinius was governor of Syria. | Сїѐ написа́нїе пе́рвое бы́сть владѧ́щꙋ сѷрі́ею кѷрині́ю. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And all went to enroll themselves, every one to his own city. | И҆ и҆дѧ́хꙋ всѝ написа́тисѧ, ко́ждо во сво́й гра́дъ. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And Joseph also went up from Galilee, out of the city of Nazareth, into Judea, to the city of David, which is called Bethlehem, because he was of the house and family of David; | Взы́де же и҆ і҆ѡ́сифъ ѿ галїле́и, и҆з̾ гра́да назаре́та, во і҆ꙋде́ю, во гра́дъ дв҃довъ, и҆̀же нарица́етсѧ виѳлее́мъ, занѐ бы́ти є҆мꙋ̀ ѿ до́мꙋ и҆ ѻ҆те́чества дв҃дова, |
|
5
|
5
|
| to enroll himself with Mary, who was betrothed to him as his wife, being great with child. | написа́тисѧ съ мр҃і́ею ѡ҆брꙋче́ною є҆мꙋ̀ жено́ю, сꙋ́щею непра́здною. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And it came to pass, while they were there, the days were fulfilled that she should be delivered. | Бы́сть же, є҆гда̀ бы́ста та́мѡ, и҆спо́лнишасѧ дні́е роди́ти є҆́й: |
|
7
|
7
|
| And she brought forth her firstborn son; and she wrapped him in swaddling clothes, and laid him in the manger, because there was no room for them in the inn. | и҆ родѝ сн҃а своего̀ пе́рвенца, и҆ пови́тъ є҆го̀, и҆ положѝ є҆го̀ въ ꙗ҆́слехъ: занѐ не бѣ̀ и҆́мъ мѣ́ста во ѡ҆би́тели. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And there were shepherds in the same country abiding in the field, and keeping watch by night over their flock. | И҆ па́стырїе бѣ́хꙋ въ то́йже странѣ̀, бдѧ́ще и҆ стрегꙋ́ще стра́жꙋ нощнꙋ́ю ѡ҆ ста́дѣ свое́мъ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And lo, an angel of the Lord stood by them, and the glory of the Lord shone round about them: and they were sore afraid. | И҆ сѐ а҆́гг҃лъ гдⷭ҇нь ста̀ въ ни́хъ, и҆ сла́ва гдⷭ҇нѧ ѡ҆сїѧ̀ и҆̀хъ: и҆ оу҆боѧ́шасѧ стра́хомъ ве́лїимъ. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And the angel said unto them, Be not afraid; for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy which shall be to all the people: | И҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ а҆́гг҃лъ: не бо́йтесѧ: се́ бо благовѣствꙋ́ю ва́мъ ра́дость ве́лїю, ꙗ҆́же бꙋ́детъ всѣ́мъ лю́демъ: |
|
11
|
11
|
| for there is born to you this day in the city of David a Savior, who is Christ the Lord. | ꙗ҆́кѡ роди́сѧ ва́мъ дне́сь сп҃съ, и҆́же є҆́сть хрⷭ҇то́съ гдⷭ҇ь, во гра́дѣ дв҃довѣ: |
|
12
|
12
|
| And this is the sign unto you: Ye shall find a babe wrapped in swaddling clothes, lying in the manger. | и҆ сѐ ва́мъ зна́менїе: ѡ҆брѧ́щете младе́нца пови́та, лежа́ща въ ꙗ҆́слехъ. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And suddenly there was with the angel a multitude of the heavenly host praising God, and saying, | И҆ внеза́пꙋ бы́сть со а҆́гг҃ломъ мно́жество вѡ́й нбⷭ҇ныхъ, хва́лѧщихъ бг҃а и҆ глаго́лющихъ: |
|
14
|
14
|
| Glory to God in the highest, And on earth peace, good pleasure among men. | сла́ва въ вы́шнихъ бг҃ꙋ, и҆ на землѝ ми́ръ, во человѣ́цѣхъ бл҃говоле́нїе. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And it came to pass, when the angels went away from them into heaven, that the men, the shepherds, said one to another, Let us now go even unto Bethlehem, and see this thing that is come to pass, which the Lord hath made known unto us. | И҆ бы́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѿидо́ша ѿ ни́хъ на не́бо а҆́гг҃ли, и҆ человѣ́цы па́стырїе рѣ́ша дрꙋ́гъ ко дрꙋ́гꙋ: пре́йдемъ до виѳлее́ма и҆ ви́димъ глаго́лъ се́й бы́вшїй, є҆го́же гдⷭ҇ь сказа̀ на́мъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And they came with haste, and found both Mary and Joseph, and the babe lying in the manger. | И҆ прїидо́ша поспѣ́шшесѧ, и҆ ѡ҆брѣто́ша мр҃їа́мь же и҆ і҆ѡ́сифа, и҆ младе́нца лежа́ща во ꙗ҆́слехъ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And when they saw it, they made known abroad concerning the saying which was spoken to them about this child. | Ви́дѣвше же сказа́ша ѡ҆ глаго́лѣ глаго́ланнѣмъ и҆̀мъ ѡ҆ ѻ҆троча́ти се́мъ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And all that heard it wondered at the things which were spoken unto them by the shepherds. | И҆ всѝ слы́шавшїи диви́шасѧ ѡ҆ глаго́ланныхъ ѿ па́стырей къ ни̑мъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| But Mary kept all these sayings, pondering them in her heart. | Мр҃їа́мь же соблюда́ше всѧ̑ глаго́лы сїѧ̑, слага́ющи въ се́рдцы свое́мъ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And the shepherds returned, glorifying and praising God for all the things that they had heard and seen, even as it was spoken unto them. | (Заⷱ҇ ѕ҃.) И҆ возврати́шасѧ па́стырїе, сла́вѧще и҆ хва́лѧще бг҃а ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же слы́шаша и҆ ви́дѣша, ꙗ҆́коже глаго́лано бы́сть къ ни̑мъ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And when eight days were fulfilled for circumcising him, his name was called JESUS, which was so called by the angel before he was conceived in the womb. | И҆ є҆гда̀ и҆спо́лнишасѧ ѻ҆́смь дні́й, да ѡ҆брѣ́жꙋтъ є҆го̀, и҆ нареко́ша и҆́мѧ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ, нарече́нное а҆́гг҃ломъ пре́жде да́же не зача́тсѧ во чре́вѣ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And when the days of their purification according to the law of Moses were fulfilled, they brought him up to Jerusalem, to present him to the Lord | И҆ є҆гда̀ и҆спо́лнишасѧ дні́е ѡ҆чище́нїѧ є҆ю̀, по зако́нꙋ мѡѷсе́овꙋ, (Заⷱ҇ з҃.) вознесо́ста є҆го̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, поста́вити є҆го̀ пред̾ гдⷭ҇емъ, |
|
23
|
23
|
| (as it is written in the law of the Lord, Every male that openeth the womb shall be called holy to the Lord), | ꙗ҆́коже є҆́сть пи́сано въ зако́нѣ гдⷭ҇ни: ꙗ҆́кѡ всѧ́къ младе́нецъ мꙋ́жеска по́лꙋ, разверза́ѧ ложесна̀, ст҃о гдⷭ҇еви нарече́тсѧ: |
|
24
|
24
|
| and to offer a sacrifice according to that which is said in the law of the Lord, A pair of turtledoves, or two young pigeons. | и҆ є҆́же да́ти же́ртвꙋ, по рече́нномꙋ въ зако́нѣ гдⷭ҇ни, два̀ гѡ́рличища и҆лѝ два̀ птєнца̀ голꙋби̑на. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And behold, there was a man in Jerusalem, whose name was Simeon; and this man was righteous and devout, looking for the consolation of Israel: and the Holy Spirit was upon him. | (Заⷱ҇ и҃.) И҆ сѐ, бѣ̀ человѣ́къ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ, є҆мꙋ́же и҆́мѧ сѷмеѡ́нъ: и҆ человѣ́къ се́й пра́веденъ и҆ бл҃гочⷭ҇ти́въ, ча́ѧ оу҆тѣ́хи і҆и҃левы: и҆ дх҃ъ бѣ̀ ст҃ъ въ не́мъ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And it had been revealed unto him by the Holy Spirit, that he should not see death, before he had seen the Lord’s Christ. | И҆ бѣ̀ є҆мꙋ̀ ѡ҆бѣ́щано дх҃омъ ст҃ы́мъ, не ви́дѣти сме́рти, пре́жде да́же не ви́дитъ хрⷭ҇та̀ гдⷭ҇нѧ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And he came in the Spirit into the temple: and when the parents brought in the child Jesus, that they might do concerning him after the custom of the law, | И҆ прїи́де дꙋ́хомъ въ це́рковь. И҆ є҆гда̀ введо́ста роди́тєлѧ ѻ҆троча̀ і҆и҃са, сотвори́ти и҆́ма по ѡ҆бы́чаю зако́нномꙋ ѡ҆ не́мъ, |
|
28
|
28
|
| then he received him into his arms, and blessed God, and said, | и҆ то́й прїе́мъ є҆го̀ на рꙋкꙋ̀ своє́ю, и҆ благословѝ бг҃а, и҆ речѐ: |
|
29
|
29
|
| Now lettest thou thy servant depart, Lord, According to thy word, in peace; | нн҃ѣ ѿпꙋща́еши раба̀ твоего̀, влⷣко, по глаго́лꙋ твоемꙋ̀, съ ми́ромъ: |
|
30
|
30
|
| For mine eyes have seen thy salvation, | ꙗ҆́кѡ ви́дѣстѣ ѻ҆́чи моѝ спⷭ҇нїе твоѐ, |
|
31
|
31
|
| Which thou hast prepared before the face of all peoples; | є҆́же є҆сѝ оу҆го́товалъ пред̾ лице́мъ всѣ́хъ люде́й: |
|
32
|
32
|
| A light for revelation to the Gentiles, And the glory of thy people Israel. | свѣ́тъ во ѿкрове́нїе ꙗ҆зы́кѡмъ, и҆ сла́вꙋ люде́й твои́хъ і҆и҃лѧ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And Joseph and his mother were marveling at the things which were spoken concerning him; | И҆ бѣ̀ і҆ѡ́сифъ и҆ мт҃и є҆гѡ̀ чꙋдѧ̑щасѧ ѡ҆ глаго́лемыхъ ѡ҆ не́мъ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| and Simeon blessed them, and said unto Mary his mother, Behold, this child is set for the falling and the rising of many in Israel; and for a sign which is spoken against; | И҆ благословѝ ѧ҆̀ сѷмеѡ́нъ, и҆ речѐ къ мр҃і́и мт҃ри є҆гѡ̀: сѐ лежи́тъ се́й на паде́нїе и҆ на воста́нїе мнѡ́гимъ во і҆и҃ли, и҆ въ зна́менїе пререка́емо: |
|
35
|
35
|
| yea and a sword shall pierce through thine own soul; that thoughts out of many hearts may be revealed. | и҆ тебѣ́ же само́й дꙋ́шꙋ про́йдетъ ѻ҆рꙋ́жїе: ꙗ҆́кѡ да ѿкры́ютсѧ ѿ мно́гихъ серде́цъ помышлє́нїѧ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And there was one Anna, a prophetess, the daughter of Phanuel, of the tribe of Asher (she was of a great age, having lived with a husband seven years from her virginity, | И҆ бѣ̀ а҆́нна прⷪ҇ро́чица, дщѝ фанꙋ́илева, ѿ колѣ́на а҆си́рова: сїѧ̀ заматорѣ́вши во дне́хъ мно́зѣхъ, жи́вши съ мꙋ́жемъ се́дмь лѣ́тъ ѿ дѣ́вства своегѡ̀: |
|
37
|
37
|
| and she was a widow of about fourscore and four years), who departed not from the temple, worshiping with fastings and supplications night and day. | и҆ та̀ вдова̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ лѣ́тъ ѻ҆́смьдесѧтъ и҆ четы́ре, ꙗ҆́же не ѿхожда́ше ѿ це́ркве, посто́мъ и҆ моли́твами слꙋжа́щи де́нь и҆ но́щь. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And she, coming up at that very hour, gave thanks unto the Lord, and spake of him to all them that were looking for redemption in Jerusalem. | И҆ та̀ въ то́й ча́съ приста́вши и҆сповѣ́дашесѧ гдⷭ҇еви, и҆ глаго́лаше ѡ҆ не́мъ всѣ̑мъ ча́ющымъ и҆збавле́нїѧ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And when they had accomplished all things that were according to the law of the Lord, they returned into Galilee, to their own city Nazareth. | И҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ сконча́шасѧ всѧ̑ по зако́нꙋ гдⷭ҇ню, возврати́шасѧ въ галїле́ю, во гра́дъ сво́й назаре́тъ. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, filled with wisdom: and the grace of God was upon him. | Ѻ҆троча́ же растѧ́ше и҆ крѣплѧ́шесѧ дꙋ́хомъ, и҆сполнѧ́ѧсѧ премꙋ́дрости: и҆ бл҃года́ть бж҃їѧ бѣ̀ на не́мъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And his parents went every year to Jerusalem at the feast of the passover. | И҆ хожда́ста роди́тєлѧ є҆гѡ̀ на всѧ́ко лѣ́то во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ въ пра́здникъ па́схи. |
|
42
|
42
|
| And when he was twelve years old, they went up to Jerusalem after the custom of the feast; | И҆ є҆гда̀ бы́сть двоюна́десѧти лѣ̑тꙋ, восходѧ́щымъ и҆̀мъ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ по ѡ҆бы́чаю пра́здника, |
|
43
|
43
|
| and when they had fulfilled the days, as they were returning, the boy Jesus tarried behind in Jerusalem; and Joseph and his mother knew it not; | и҆ сконча́вшымъ дни̑, и҆ возвраща́ющымсѧ и҆̀мъ, ѡ҆ста̀ ѻ҆́трокъ і҆и҃съ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ: и҆ не разꙋмѣ̀ і҆ѡ́сифъ и҆ мт҃и є҆гѡ̀: |
|
44
|
44
|
| but supposing him to be in the company, they went a day’s journey; and they sought for him among their kinsfolk and among their acquaintance: | мнѣ̑вша же є҆го̀ въ дрꙋжи́нѣ сꙋ́ща, преидо́ста днѐ пꙋ́ть, и҆ и҆ска́ста є҆го̀ во сро́дницѣхъ и҆ въ зна́емыхъ: |
|
45
|
45
|
| and when they found him not, they returned to Jerusalem, seeking him. | и҆ не ѡ҆брѣ̑тша є҆го̀, возврати́стасѧ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, взыска̑юща є҆го̀. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And it came to pass, after three days they found him in the temple, sitting in the midst of the teachers, both hearing them, and asking them questions: | И҆ бы́сть по трїе́хъ дне́хъ, ѡ҆брѣто́ста є҆го̀ въ це́ркви, сѣдѧ́щаго посредѣ̀ оу҆чи́телей, и҆ послꙋ́шающаго и҆́хъ, и҆ вопроша́ющаго и҆̀хъ: |
|
47
|
47
|
| and all that heard him were amazed at his understanding and his answers. | оу҆жаса́хꙋсѧ же всѝ послꙋ́шающїи є҆гѡ̀ ѡ҆ ра́зꙋмѣ и҆ ѡ҆ ѿвѣ́тѣхъ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
48
|
48
|
| And when they saw him, they were astonished; and his mother said unto him, Son, why hast thou thus dealt with us? behold, thy father and I sought thee sorrowing. | И҆ ви̑дѣвша є҆го̀, диви́стасѧ: и҆ къ немꙋ̀ мт҃и є҆гѡ̀ речѐ: ча́до, что̀ сотворѝ на́ма та́кѡ; сѐ ѻ҆те́цъ тво́й и҆ а҆́зъ болѧ̑ща и҆ска́хома тебѐ. |
|
49
|
49
|
| And he said unto them, How is it that ye sought me? knew ye not that I must be in my Father’s house? | И҆ речѐ къ ни́ма: что̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆ска́ста менѐ; не вѣ́ста ли, ꙗ҆́кѡ въ тѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же ѻ҆ц҃а̀ моегѡ̀, досто́итъ бы́ти мѝ; |
|
50
|
50
|
| And they understood not the saying which he spake unto them. | И҆ та̑ не разꙋмѣ́ста глаго́ла, є҆го́же глаго́ла и҆́ма. |
|
51
|
51
|
| And he went down with them, and came to Nazareth; and he was subject unto them: and his mother kept all these sayings in her heart. | И҆ сни́де съ ни́ма, и҆ прїи́де въ назаре́тъ: и҆ бѣ̀ повинꙋ́ѧсѧ и҆́ма. И҆ мт҃и є҆гѡ̀ соблюда́ше всѧ̑ глаго́лы сїѧ̑ въ се́рдцы свое́мъ. |
|
52
|
52
|
| And Jesus advanced in wisdom and stature, and in favor with God and men. | И҆ і҆и҃съ преспѣва́ше премⷣростїю и҆ во́зрастомъ и҆ блгⷣтїю оу҆ бг҃а и҆ человѣ̑къ. |
|
Chapter 3
|
Глава́ г҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now in the fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Caesar, Pontius Pilate being governor of Judea, and Herod being tetrarch of Galilee, and his brother Philip tetrarch of the region of Ituraea and Trachonitis, and Lysanias tetrarch of Abilene, | (Заⷱ҇ ѳ҃.) Въ пѧ́тое же на́десѧте лѣ́то влады́чества тїве́рїа ке́сарѧ, ѡ҆блада́ющꙋ понті́йскомꙋ пїла́тꙋ і҆ꙋде́ею, и҆ четвертовла́ствꙋющꙋ галїле́ею и҆́рѡдꙋ, фїлі́ппꙋ же бра́тꙋ є҆гѡ̀ четвертовла́ствꙋющꙋ і҆тꙋре́ею и҆ трахѡні́тскою страно́ю, и҆ лѷса́нїю а҆вїлині́ею четвертовла́ствꙋющꙋ, |
|
2
|
2
|
| in the high priesthood of Annas and Caiaphas, the word of God came unto John the son of Zechariah in the wilderness. | при а҆рхїере́и а҆́ннѣ и҆ каїа́фѣ, бы́сть гл҃го́лъ бж҃їй ко і҆ѡа́ннꙋ заха́рїинꙋ сы́нꙋ въ пꙋсты́ни. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he came into all the region round about the Jordan, preaching the baptism of repentance unto remission of sins; | И҆ прїи́де во всю̀ странꙋ̀ і҆ѻрда́нскꙋю, проповѣ́даѧ креще́нїе покаѧ́нїѧ во ѡ҆ставле́нїе грѣхѡ́въ: |
|
4
|
4
|
| as it is written in the book of the words of Isaiah the prophet, saying, The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Make ye ready the way of the Lord, Make his paths straight. | ꙗ҆́коже є҆́сть пи́сано въ кни́зѣ слове́съ и҆са́їи прⷪ҇ро́ка, глаго́люща: гла́съ вопїю́щаго въ пꙋсты́ни: оу҆гото́вайте пꙋ́ть гдⷭ҇нь: пра̑вы твори́те стєзѝ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
5
|
5
|
| Every valley shall be filled, And every mountain and hill shall be brought low; And the crooked shall become straight, And the rough ways smooth; | всѧ́ка де́брь и҆спо́лнитсѧ, и҆ всѧ́ка гора̀ и҆ хо́лмъ смири́тсѧ: и҆ бꙋ́дꙋтъ стро́пѡтнаѧ въ пра̑ваѧ, и҆ ѻ҆́стрїи въ пꙋти̑ гла̑дки: |
|
6
|
6
|
| And all flesh shall see the salvation of God. | и҆ оу҆́зритъ всѧ́ка пло́ть спⷭ҇нїе бж҃їе. |
|
7
|
7
|
| He said therefore to the multitudes that went out to be baptized of him, Ye offspring of vipers, who warned you to flee from the wrath to come? | Глаго́лаше же и҆сходѧ́щымъ наро́дѡмъ крести́тисѧ ѿ негѡ̀: порождє́нїѧ є҆хі́днѡва, кто̀ сказа̀ ва́мъ бѣжа́ти ѿ грѧдꙋ́щагѡ гнѣ́ва; |
|
8
|
8
|
| Bring forth therefore fruits worthy of repentance, and begin not to say within yourselves, We have Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, that God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham. | Сотвори́те оу҆̀бо плоды̀ достѡ́ины покаѧ́нїѧ: и҆ не начина́йте глаго́лати въ себѣ̀: ѻ҆тца̀ и҆́мамы а҆враа́ма: глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ мо́жетъ бг҃ъ ѿ ка́менїѧ сегѡ̀ воздви́гнꙋти ча̑да а҆враа́мꙋ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And even now the axe also lieth at the root of the trees: every tree therefore that bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. | Оу҆же́ бо и҆ сѣки́ра при ко́рени дре́ва лежи́тъ: всѧ́ко оу҆̀бо дре́во, не творѧ́щее плода̀ добра̀, посѣка́етсѧ и҆ во ѻ҆́гнь вмета́етсѧ. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And the multitudes asked him, saying, What then shall we do? | И҆ вопроша́хꙋ є҆го̀ наро́ди, глаго́люще: что̀ оу҆̀бо сотвори́мъ; |
|
11
|
11
|
| And he answereth and saith unto them, He that hath two coats, let him impart to him that hath none; and he that hath food, let him do likewise. | Ѿвѣща́въ же глаго́ла и҆́мъ: и҆мѣ́ѧй двѣ̀ ри̑зѣ, да пода́стъ не и҆мꙋ́щемꙋ: и҆ и҆мѣ́ѧй бра̑шна, та́кожде да твори́тъ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And there came also publicans to be baptized, and they said unto him, Teacher, what shall we do? | Прїидо́ша же и҆ мы́тари крести́тисѧ ѿ негѡ̀, и҆ рѣ́ша къ немꙋ̀: оу҆чи́телю, что̀ сотвори́мъ; |
|
13
|
13
|
| And he said unto them, Extort no more than that which is appointed you. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ къ ни̑мъ: ничто́же бо́лѣе ѿ повелѣ́ннагѡ ва́мъ твори́те. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And soldiers also asked him, saying, And we, what shall we do? And he said unto them, Extort from no man by violence, neither accuse anyone wrongfully; and be content with your wages. | Вопроша́хꙋ же є҆го̀ и҆ во́ини, глаго́люще: и҆ мы̀ что̀ сотвори́мъ; И҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: ни кого́же ѡ҆би́дите, ни ѡ҆клеветава́йте: и҆ дово́лни бꙋ́дите ѡ҆брѡ́ки ва́шими. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And as the people were in expectation, and all men reasoned in their hearts concerning John, whether haply he were the Christ; | Ча́ющымъ же лю́демъ, и҆ помышлѧ́ющымъ всѣ̑мъ въ сердца́хъ свои́хъ ѡ҆ і҆ѡа́ннѣ, є҆да̀ то́й є҆́сть хрⷭ҇то́съ, |
|
16
|
16
|
| John answered, saying unto them all, I indeed baptize you with water; but there cometh he that is mightier than I, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to unloose: he shall baptize you in the Holy Spirit and in fire: | ѿвѣщава́ше і҆ѡа́ннъ всѣ̑мъ, глаго́лѧ: а҆́зъ оу҆́бѡ водо́ю креща́ю вы̀: грѧде́тъ же крѣ́плїй менє̀, є҆мꙋ́же нѣ́смь досто́инъ ѿрѣши́ти реме́нь сапѡгꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀: то́й вы̀ крести́тъ дх҃омъ ст҃ы́мъ и҆ ѻ҆гне́мъ: |
|
17
|
17
|
| whose fan is in his hand, and he will thoroughly cleanse his threshing floor, and will gather the wheat into his garner; but the chaff he will burn up with unquenchable fire. | є҆мꙋ́же лопа́та въ рꙋкꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ ѡ҆треби́тъ гꙋмно̀ своѐ, и҆ собере́тъ пшени́цꙋ въ жи́тницꙋ свою̀, пле́вы же сожже́тъ ѻ҆гне́мъ негаса́ющимъ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| With many other exhortations therefore preached he good tidings unto the people; | Мнѡ́га же оу҆̀бо и҆ и҆́на, оу҆тѣша́ѧ благовѣствова́ше лю́демъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| but Herod the tetrarch, being reproved by him for Herodias his brother’s wife, and for all the evil things which Herod had done, | (Заⷱ҇ і҃.) И҆́рѡдъ же четвертовла́стникъ, ѡ҆блича́емъ ѿ негѡ̀ ѡ҆ и҆рѡдїа́дѣ женѣ̀ бра́та своегѡ̀, и҆ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же сотворѝ ѕла̑ѧ и҆́рѡдъ, |
|
20
|
20
|
| added this also to them all, that he shut up John in the prison. | приложѝ и҆ сїѐ над̾ всѣ́ми, и҆ затворѝ і҆ѡа́нна въ темни́цѣ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| Now it came to pass, when all the people were baptized, that, Jesus also having been baptized, and praying, the heaven was opened, | Бы́сть же є҆гда̀ крⷭ҇ти́шасѧ всѝ лю́дїе, и҆ і҆и҃сꙋ кр҃щшꙋсѧ и҆ молѧ́щꙋсѧ, ѿве́рзесѧ не́бо, |
|
22
|
22
|
| and the Holy Spirit descended in a bodily form, as a dove, upon him, and a voice came out of heaven, saying, Thou art my beloved Son; in thee I am well pleased. | и҆ сни́де дх҃ъ ст҃ы́й тѣле́снымъ ѡ҆́бразомъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ го́лꙋбь, на́нь: и҆ гла́съ съ небесѐ бы́сть, глаго́лѧ: ты̀ є҆сѝ сн҃ъ мо́й возлю́бленный, ѡ҆ тебѣ̀ бл҃говоли́хъ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And Jesus himself, when he began to teach, was about thirty years of age, being (as was supposed) the son of Joseph, the son of Heli, | (Заⷱ҇ а҃і҃.) И҆ то́й бѣ̀ і҆и҃съ ꙗ҆́кѡ лѣ́тъ три́десѧть начина́ѧ, сы́й, ꙗ҆́кѡ мни́мь, сн҃ъ і҆ѡ́сифовъ, и҆лі́евъ, |
|
24
|
24
|
| the son of Matthat, the son of Levi, the son of Melchi, the son of Janna, the son of Joseph, | матѳа́товъ, леѵі́инъ, мелхі́инъ, і҆анна́евъ, і҆ѡ́сифовъ, |
|
25
|
25
|
| the son of Mattathias, the son of Amos, the son of Nahum, the son of Esli, the son of Naggai, | маттаѳі́евъ, а҆мѡ́совъ, наꙋ́мовъ, є҆слі́мовъ, нагге́овъ, |
|
26
|
26
|
| the son of Maath, the son of Mattathias, the son of Semeei, the son of Joseph, the son of Judah, | маа́ѳовъ, маттаѳі́евъ, семеі́евъ, і҆ѡ́сифовъ, і҆ꙋ́динъ, |
|
27
|
27
|
| the son of Joannan, the son of Rhesa, the son of Zerubbabel, the son of Shealtiel, the son of Neri, | і҆ѡа́ннановъ, риса́евъ, зорова́велевъ, салаѳїи́левъ, нирі́евъ, |
|
28
|
28
|
| the son of Melchi, the son of Addi, the son of Cosam, the son of Elmodam, the son of Er, | мелхі́евъ, а҆дді́евъ, кѡса́мовъ, є҆лмѡда́мовъ, и҆́ровъ, |
|
29
|
29
|
| the son of Jose, the son of Eliezer, the son of Jorim, the son of Matthat, the son of Levi, | і҆ѡсі́евъ, є҆лїезе́ровъ, і҆ѡрі́мовъ, матѳа́товъ, леѵі́инъ, |
|
30
|
30
|
| the son of Simeon, the son of Judas, the son of Joseph, the son of Jonan, the son of Eliakim, | сѷмеѡ́новъ, і҆ꙋ́динъ, і҆ѡ́сифовъ, і҆ѡна́новъ, є҆лїакі́мовъ, |
|
31
|
31
|
| the son of Melea, the son of Mainan, the son of Mattatha, the son of Nathan, the son of David, | мелеа́евъ, маїна́новъ, маттаѳа́евъ, наѳа́новъ, дв҃довъ, |
|
32
|
32
|
| the son of Jesse, the son of Obed, the son of Boaz, the son of Salmon, the son of Nahshon, | і҆ессе́овъ, ѡ҆ви́довъ, воо́зовъ, салмѡ́новъ, наассѡ́новъ, |
|
33
|
33
|
| the son of Amminadab, the son of Ram, the son of Joram, the son of Hezron, the son of Perez, the son of Judah, | а҆мїнада́вовъ, а҆ра́мовъ, є҆срѡ́мовъ, фаре́совъ, і҆ꙋ́динъ, |
|
34
|
34
|
| the son of Jacob, the son of Isaac, the son of Abraham, the son of Terah, the son of Nahor, | і҆а́кѡвль, і҆саа́ковъ, а҆враа́мовъ, ѳа́ринъ, нахѡ́ровъ, |
|
35
|
35
|
| the son of Serug, the son of Reu, the son of Peleg, the son of Eber, the son of Shelah, | серꙋ́ховъ, рага́вовъ, фале́ковъ, є҆ве́ровъ, сала́новъ, |
|
36
|
36
|
| the son of Cainan, the son of Arphaxad, the son of Shem, the son of Noah, the son of Lamech, | каїна́новъ, а҆рфаѯа́довъ, си́мовъ, нѡ́евъ, ла́меховъ, |
|
37
|
37
|
| the son of Methuselah, the son of Enoch, the son of Jared, the son of Mahalaleel, the son of Cainan, | маѳꙋса́левъ, є҆нѡ́ховъ, і҆а́редовъ, малелеи́ловъ, каїна́новъ, |
|
38
|
38
|
| the son of Enosh, the son of Seth, the son of Adam, the son of God. | є҆нѡ́совъ, си́ѳовъ, а҆да́мовъ, бж҃їй. |
|
Chapter 4
|
Глава́ д҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And Jesus, full of the Holy Spirit, returned from the Jordan, and was led in the Spirit into the wilderness | (Заⷱ҇ в҃і҃.) І҆и҃съ же и҆спо́лнь дх҃а ст҃а возврати́сѧ ѿ і҆ѻрда́на: и҆ ведѧ́шесѧ дх҃омъ въ пꙋсты́ню, |
|
2
|
2
|
| during forty days, being tempted of the devil. And he did eat nothing in those days: and when they were completed, he afterward hungered. | дні́й четы́ридесѧть и҆скꙋша́емь ѿ дїа́вола: и҆ не ꙗ҆́стъ ничесѡ́же во дни̑ ты̑ѧ: и҆ сконча́вшымсѧ и҆́мъ, послѣдѝ взалка̀. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And the devil said unto him, If thou art the Son of God, command this stone that it become bread. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ дїа́волъ: а҆́ще сн҃ъ є҆сѝ бж҃їй, рцы̀ ка́меневи семꙋ̀, да бꙋ́детъ хлѣ́бъ. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And Jesus answered unto him, saying, It is written, Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word of God. | И҆ ѿвѣща̀ і҆и҃съ къ немꙋ̀, глаго́лѧ: пи́сано є҆́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ не ѡ҆ хлѣ́бѣ є҆ди́номъ жи́въ бꙋ́детъ человѣ́къ, но ѡ҆ всѧ́комъ гл҃го́лѣ бж҃їи. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And the devil, leading him up into a high mountain, showed him all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time. | И҆ возве́дъ є҆го̀ дїа́волъ на горꙋ̀ высокꙋ̀, показа̀ є҆мꙋ̀ всѧ̑ ца̑рствїѧ вселе́нныѧ въ ча́сѣ [чертѣ̀] вре́меннѣ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And the devil said unto him, To thee will I give all this authority, and the glory of them: for it hath been delivered unto me; and to whomsoever I will I give it. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ дїа́волъ: тебѣ̀ да́мъ вла́сть сїю̀ всю̀ и҆ сла́вꙋ и҆́хъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ мнѣ̀ предана̀ є҆́сть, и҆, є҆мꙋ́же а҆́ще хощꙋ̀, да́мъ ю҆̀: |
|
7
|
7
|
| If thou therefore wilt worship before me, it shall all be thine. | ты̀ оу҆̀бо а҆́ще поклони́шисѧ пре́до мно́ю, бꙋ́дꙋтъ тебѣ̀ всѧ̑. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto him, Get thee behind me, Satan: it is written, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: и҆дѝ за мно́ю, сатано̀ пи́сано є҆́сть: поклони́шисѧ гдⷭ҇ꙋ бг҃ꙋ твоемꙋ̀, и҆ томꙋ̀ є҆ди́номꙋ послꙋ́жиши. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And he led him to Jerusalem, and set him on the pinnacle of the temple, and said unto him, If thou art the Son of God, cast thyself down from hence: | И҆ ведѐ є҆го̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, и҆ поста́ви є҆го̀ на крилѣ̀ церко́внѣмъ, и҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: а҆́ще сн҃ъ є҆сѝ бж҃їй, ве́рзисѧ ѿсю́дꙋ до́лꙋ: |
|
10
|
10
|
| for it is written, He shall give his angels charge concerning thee, to guard thee: | пи́сано бо є҆́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́гг҃лѡмъ свои̑мъ заповѣ́сть ѡ҆ тебѣ̀ сохрани́ти тѧ̀: |
|
11
|
11
|
| and, On their hands they shall bear thee up, Lest haply thou dash thy foot against a stone. | и҆ на рꙋка́хъ во́змꙋтъ тѧ̀, да не когда̀ преткне́ши ѡ҆ ка́мень но́гꙋ твою̀. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto him, It is said, Thou shalt not make trial of the Lord thy God. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ, ꙗ҆́кѡ рече́но є҆́сть: не и҆скꙋ́сиши гдⷭ҇а бг҃а твоегѡ̀. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And when the devil had completed every temptation, he departed from him for a season. | И҆ сконча́въ всѐ и҆скꙋше́нїе дїа́волъ, ѿи́де ѿ негѡ̀ до вре́мене. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And Jesus returned in the power of the Spirit into Galilee: and a fame went out concerning him through all the region round about. | И҆ возврати́сѧ і҆и҃съ въ си́лѣ дх҃о́внѣй въ галїле́ю: и҆ вѣ́сть и҆зы́де по все́й странѣ̀ ѡ҆ не́мъ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he taught in their synagogues, being glorified of all. | И҆ то́й оу҆ча́ше на со́нмищихъ и҆́хъ, сла́вимъ всѣ́ми. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And he came to Nazareth, where he had been brought up: and he entered, as his custom was, into the synagogue on the sabbath day, and stood up to read. | (Заⷱ҇ г҃і҃.) И҆ прїи́де въ назаре́тъ, и҆дѣ́же бѣ̀ воспита́нъ: и҆ вни́де, по ѡ҆бы́чаю своемꙋ̀, въ де́нь сꙋббѡ́тный въ со́нмище, и҆ воста̀ честѝ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And there was delivered unto him the book of Isaiah the prophet. And he unrolled the book, and found the place where it was written, | И҆ да́ша є҆мꙋ̀ кни́гꙋ и҆са́їи прⷪ҇ро́ка: и҆ разгнꙋ́въ кни́гꙋ, ѡ҆брѣ́те мѣ́сто, и҆дѣ́же бѣ̀ напи́сано: |
|
18
|
18
|
| The Spirit of the Lord is upon me, Because he anointed me to preach good tidings to the poor: He hath sent me to heal the brokenhearted, To proclaim release to the captives, And recovering of sight to the blind, To set at liberty them that are bruised, | дх҃ъ гдⷭ҇ень на мнѣ̀: є҆гѡ́же ра́ди пома́за мѧ̀ бл҃говѣсти́ти ни́щымъ, посла́ мѧ и҆сцѣли́ти сокрꙋшє́нныѧ се́рдцемъ, проповѣ́дати плѣнє́ннымъ ѿпꙋще́нїе и҆ слѣпы̑мъ прозрѣ́нїе, ѿпꙋсти́ти сокрꙋшє́нныѧ во ѿра́дꙋ, |
|
19
|
19
|
| To proclaim the acceptable year of the Lord. | проповѣ́дати лѣ́то гдⷭ҇не прїѧ́тно. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And he closed the book, and gave it back to the attendant, and sat down: and the eyes of all in the synagogue were fastened on him. | И҆ согнꙋ́въ кни́гꙋ, ѿда́въ слꙋзѣ̀, сѣ́де: и҆ всѣ̑мъ въ со́нмищи ѻ҆́чи бѣ́хꙋ зрѧ́ще на́нь. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And he began to say unto them, Today hath this scripture been fulfilled in your ears. | И҆ нача́тъ гл҃ати къ ни̑мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ дне́сь сбы́стсѧ писа́нїе сїѐ во оу҆́шїю ва́шєю. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And all bare him witness, and wondered at the words of grace which proceeded out of his mouth: and they said, Is not this Joseph’s son? | И҆ всѝ свидѣ́телствовахꙋ є҆мꙋ̀, (Заⷱ҇ д҃і҃.) и҆ дивлѧ́хꙋсѧ ѡ҆ словесѣ́хъ блгⷣти, и҆сходѧ́щихъ и҆з̾ оу҆́стъ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ глаго́лахꙋ: не се́й ли є҆́сть сн҃ъ і҆ѡ́сифовъ; |
|
23
|
23
|
| And he said unto them, Doubtless ye will say unto me this parable, Physician, heal thyself: whatsoever we have heard done in Capernaum, do also here in thine own country. | И҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: всѧ́кѡ рече́те мѝ при́тчꙋ сїю̀: врачꙋ̀, и҆сцѣли́сѧ са́мъ: є҆ли̑ка слы́шахомъ бы̑вшаѧ въ капернаꙋ́мѣ, сотворѝ и҆ здѣ̀ во ѻ҆те́чествїи свое́мъ. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And he said, Verily I say unto you, No prophet is acceptable in his own country. | Рече́ же: а҆ми́нь гл҃ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ни кото́рый прⷪ҇ро́къ прїѧ́тенъ є҆́сть во ѻ҆те́чествїи свое́мъ: |
|
25
|
25
|
| But of a truth I say unto you, There were many widows in Israel in the days of Elijah, when the heaven was shut up three years and six months, when there came a great famine over all the land; | пои́стиннѣ же гл҃ю ва́мъ: мнѡ́ги вдови̑цы бѣ́ша во дни̑ и҆лїины̑ во і҆и҃ли, є҆гда̀ заключи́сѧ не́бо трѝ лѣ̑та и҆ мцⷭ҇ъ ше́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ бы́сть гла́дъ вели́къ по все́й землѝ: |
|
26
|
26
|
| and unto none of them was Elijah sent, but only to Zarephath, in the land of Sidon, unto a woman that was a widow. | и҆ ни ко є҆ди́ной и҆́хъ по́сланъ бы́сть и҆лїа̀, то́кмѡ въ саре́птꙋ сїдѡ́нскꙋю къ женѣ̀ вдови́цѣ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And there were many lepers in Israel in the time of Elisha the prophet; and none of them was cleansed, but only Naaman the Syrian. | И҆ мно́зи прокаже́ни бѣ́хꙋ при є҆лїссе́и прⷪ҇ро́цѣ во і҆и҃ли: и҆ ни є҆ди́нъ же ѿ ни́хъ ѡ҆чи́стисѧ, то́кмѡ неема́нъ сѷрїани́нъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And they were all filled with wrath in the synagogue, as they heard these things; | И҆ и҆спо́лнишасѧ всѝ ꙗ҆́рости въ со́нмищи, слы́шавшїи сїѧ̑: |
|
29
|
29
|
| and they rose up, and cast him forth out of the city, and led him unto the brow of the hill whereon their city was built, that they might throw him down headlong. | и҆ воста́вше и҆згна́ша є҆го̀ во́нъ и҆з̾ гра́да, и҆ ведо́ша є҆го̀ до верхꙋ̀ горы̀, на не́йже гра́дъ и҆́хъ со́зданъ бѧ́ше, да бы́ша є҆го̀ низри́нꙋли: |
|
30
|
30
|
| But he passing through the midst of them went his way. | ѻ҆́нъ же проше́дъ посредѣ̀ и҆́хъ, и҆дѧ́ше. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And he came down to Capernaum, a city of Galilee. And he was teaching them on the sabbath day: | (Заⷱ҇ е҃і҃.) И҆ сни́де въ капернаꙋ́мъ гра́дъ галїле́йскїй: и҆ бѣ̀ оу҆чѧ̀ и҆̀хъ въ сꙋббѡ̑ты. |
|
32
|
32
|
| and they were astonished at his teaching; for his word was with authority. | И҆ оу҆жаса́хꙋсѧ ѡ҆ оу҆че́нїи є҆гѡ̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ со вла́стїю бѣ̀ сло́во є҆гѡ̀. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And in the synagogue there was a man, that had a spirit of an unclean demon; and he cried out with a loud voice, | И҆ въ со́нмищи бѣ̀ человѣ́къ и҆мы́й дꙋ́ха бѣ́са нечи́ста, и҆ возопѝ гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ, |
|
34
|
34
|
| saying, Ah! what have we to do with thee, Jesus thou Nazarene? art thou come to destroy us? I know thee who thou art, the Holy One of God. | глаго́лѧ: ѡ҆ста́ви, что̀ на́мъ и҆ тебѣ̀, і҆и҃се назарѧ́нине, прише́лъ є҆сѝ погꙋби́ти на́съ: вѣ́мъ тѧ̀, кто̀ є҆сѝ, ст҃ы́й бж҃їй. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And Jesus rebuked him, saying, Hold thy peace, and come out of him. And when the demon had thrown him down in the midst, he came out of him, having done him no hurt. | И҆ запретѝ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ, глаго́лѧ: премолчѝ и҆ и҆зы́ди и҆з̾ негѡ̀. И҆ пове́ргъ є҆го̀ бѣ́съ посредѣ̀, и҆зы́де и҆з̾ негѡ̀, ника́коже вреди́въ є҆го̀. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And amazement came upon all, and they spake together, one with another, saying, What is this word, that with authority and power he commandeth the unclean spirits, and they come out? | И҆ бы́сть оу҆́жасъ на всѣ́хъ, и҆ стѧза́хꙋсѧ, дрꙋ́гъ ко дрꙋ́гꙋ глаго́люще: что̀ сло́во сїѐ, ꙗ҆́кѡ вла́стїю и҆ си́лою вели́тъ нечи̑стымъ дꙋховѡ́мъ, и҆ и҆схо́дѧтъ; |
|
37
|
37
|
| And there went forth a rumor concerning him into every place of the region round about. | (Заⷱ҇ ѕ҃і҃.) И҆ и҆схожда́ше гла́съ ѡ҆ не́мъ во всѧ́ко мѣ́сто страны̀. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And he rose up out of the synagogue, and entered into the house of Simon. And Simon’s wife’s mother was holden with a great fever; and they besought him for her. | Воста́въ же и҆з̾ со́нмища, вни́де въ до́мъ сі́мѡновъ: те́ща же сі́мѡнова бѣ̀ ѡ҆держи́ма ѻ҆гне́мъ ве́лїимъ: и҆ моли́ша є҆го̀ ѡ҆ не́й. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And he stood over her, and rebuked the fever; and it left her: and immediately she rose up and ministered unto them. | И҆ ста́въ над̾ не́ю, запретѝ ѻ҆гню̀, и҆ ѡ҆ста́ви ю҆̀: а҆́бїе же воста́вши слꙋжа́ше и҆́мъ. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And when the sun was setting, all they that had any sick with diverse diseases brought them unto him; and he laid his hands on every one of them, and healed them. | Заходѧ́щꙋ же со́лнцꙋ, всѝ, є҆ли́цы и҆мѣ́ѧхꙋ болѧ́щыѧ недꙋ̑ги разли́чными, привожда́хꙋ и҆̀хъ къ немꙋ̀: ѻ҆́нъ же на є҆ди́наго коего́ждо и҆́хъ рꙋ́цѣ возло́жь, и҆сцѣлѧ́ше и҆̀хъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And demons also came out from many, crying out, and saying, Thou art the Christ, the Son of God. And rebuking them, he suffered them not to speak, because they knew that he was the Christ. | И҆схожда́хꙋ же и҆ бѣ́си ѿ мно́гихъ, вопїю́ще и҆ глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ ты̀ є҆сѝ хрⷭ҇то́съ сн҃ъ бж҃їй. И҆ запреща́ѧ не даѧ́ше и҆́мъ глаго́лати, ꙗ҆́кѡ вѣ́дѧхꙋ хрⷭ҇та̀ самаго̀ сꙋ́ща. |
|
42
|
42
|
| And when it was day, he came out and went into a desert place: and the multitudes sought after him, and came unto him, and would have stayed him, that he should not go from them. | Бы́вшꙋ же днѝ, и҆зше́дъ и҆дѐ въ пꙋ́сто мѣ́сто: и҆ наро́ди и҆ска́хꙋ є҆го̀, и҆ прїидо́ша къ немꙋ̀, и҆ оу҆держава́хꙋ є҆го̀, да бы̀ не ѿше́лъ ѿ ни́хъ. |
|
43
|
43
|
| But he said unto them, I must preach the good tidings of the kingdom of God to the other cities also: for to this end am I sent. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ къ ни̑мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆ дрꙋги̑мъ градовѡ́мъ бл҃говѣсти́ти мѝ подоба́етъ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе: ꙗ҆́кѡ на сѐ по́сланъ є҆́смь. |
|
44
|
44
|
| And he was preaching in the synagogues of Galilee. | И҆ бѣ̀ проповѣ́даѧ на со́нмищихъ галїле́йскихъ. |
|
Chapter 5
|
Глава́ є҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now it came to pass, while the multitude pressed upon him to hear the word of God, that he was standing by the lake of Gennesaret; | (Заⷱ҇ з҃і҃.) Бы́сть же належа́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ наро́дꙋ, да бы́ша слы́шали сло́во бж҃їе, и҆ то́й бѣ̀ стоѧ̀ при є҆́зерѣ геннисаре́тстѣ: |
|
2
|
2
|
| and he saw two boats standing by the lake: but the fishermen had gone out of them, and were washing their nets. | и҆ ви́дѣ два̀ кораблѧ̑ стоѧ́ща при є҆́зерѣ: ры́барїе же ѿше́дше ѿ нею̀, и҆змыва́хꙋ мрє́жи. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he entered into one of the boats, which was Simon’s, and asked him to put out a little from the land. And he sat down and taught the multitudes out of the boat. | Влѣ́зъ же въ є҆ди́нъ ѿ кораблю̑, и҆́же бѣ̀ сі́мѡновъ, молѝ є҆го̀ ѿ землѝ ѿстꙋпи́ти ма́лѡ: и҆ сѣ́дъ оу҆ча́ше и҆з̾ кораблѧ̀ наро́ды. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And when he had left speaking, he said unto Simon, Put out into the deep, and let down your nets for a draft. | Ꙗ҆́коже преста̀ глаго́лѧ, речѐ къ сі́мѡнꙋ: постꙋпѝ во глꙋбинꙋ̀, и҆ вве́рзите мрє́жи ва́шѧ въ лови́твꙋ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And Simon answered and said unto him, Master, we toiled the whole night, and took nothing: but at thy word I will let down the net. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ сі́мѡнъ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: наста́вниче, ѡ҆б̾ но́щь всю̀ трꙋ́ждшесѧ, ничесо́же ꙗ҆́хомъ: по глаго́лꙋ же твоемꙋ̀ вве́ргꙋ мре́жꙋ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And when they had done this, they enclosed a great multitude of fish; and their net was breaking; | И҆ сѐ сотво́рше, ꙗ҆́ша мно́жество ры́бъ мно́го: протерза́шесѧ же мре́жа и҆́хъ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| and they beckoned unto their partners, who were in the other boat, that they should come and help them. And they came, and filled both the boats, so that they began to sink. | И҆ поманꙋ́ша прича́стникѡмъ, и҆̀же бѣ́хꙋ во дрꙋзѣ́мъ кораблѝ, да прише́дше помо́гꙋтъ и҆̀мъ: и҆ прїидо́ша, и҆ и҆спо́лниша ѻ҆́ба кораблѧ̑, ꙗ҆́кѡ погрꙋжа́тисѧ и҆́ма. |
|
8
|
8
|
| But Simon Peter, when he saw it, fell down at Jesus’ knees, saying, Depart from me; for I am a sinful man, O Lord. | Ви́дѣвъ же сі́мѡнъ пе́тръ, припадѐ къ колѣ́нома і҆и҃совома, глаго́лѧ: и҆зы́ди ѿ менє̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ мꙋ́жъ грѣ́шенъ є҆́смь, гдⷭ҇и. |
|
9
|
9
|
| For he was amazed, and all that were with him, at the draft of the fish which they had taken; | Оу҆́ жасъ бо ѡ҆держа́ше є҆го̀ и҆ всѧ̑ сꙋ́щыѧ съ ни́мъ, ѡ҆ лови́твѣ ры́бъ, ꙗ҆̀же ꙗ҆́ша. |
|
10
|
10
|
| and so were also James and John, sons of Zebedee, who were partners with Simon. And Jesus said unto Simon, Fear not; from henceforth thou shalt catch men. | Та́кожде же і҆а́кѡва и҆ і҆ѡа́нна сы̑на зеведе́ѡва, ꙗ҆́же бѣ́ста ѡ҆бє́щника сі́мѡнови. И҆ речѐ къ сі́мѡнꙋ і҆и҃съ: не бо́йсѧ: ѿсе́лѣ бꙋ́деши человѣ́ки ловѧ̀. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And when they had brought their boats to land, they left all, and followed him. | И҆ и҆звле́кше (ѻ҆́ба) кораблѧ̑ на зе́млю, ѡ҆ста́вльше всѧ̑, в̾слѣ́дъ є҆гѡ̀ и҆до́ша. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And it came to pass, while he was in one of the cities, behold, a man full of leprosy: and when he saw Jesus, he fell on his face, and besought him, saying, Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. | (Заⷱ҇ и҃і҃.) И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ бѣ̀ і҆и҃съ во є҆ди́номъ ѿ градѡ́въ, и҆ сѐ, мꙋ́жъ и҆спо́лнь прокаже́нїѧ: и҆ ви́дѣвъ і҆и҃са, па́дъ ни́цъ, молѧ́сѧ є҆мꙋ̀, глаго́лѧ: гдⷭ҇и, а҆́ще хо́щеши, мо́жеши мѧ̀ ѡ҆чⷭ҇тити. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And he stretched forth his hand, and touched him, saying, I will; be thou made clean. And straightaway the leprosy departed from him. | И҆ просте́ръ рꙋ́кꙋ, коснꙋ́сѧ є҆гѡ̀, ре́къ: хощꙋ̀, ѡ҆чи́стисѧ: и҆ а҆́бїе прока́за ѿи́де ѿ негѡ̀. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And he charged him to tell no man: but go thy way, and show thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing, according as Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them. | И҆ то́й заповѣ́да є҆мꙋ̀ ни комꙋ́же повѣ́дати: но ше́дъ покажи́сѧ і҆ере́ови, и҆ принесѝ ѡ҆ ѡ҆чище́нїи твое́мъ, ꙗ҆́коже повелѣ̀ мѡѷсе́й, во свидѣ́телство и҆̀мъ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| But so much the more went abroad the report concerning him: and great multitudes came together to hear, and to be healed by him of their infirmities. | Прохожда́ше же па́че сло́во ѡ҆ не́мъ: и҆ схожда́хꙋсѧ наро́ди мно́зи слы́шати и҆ цѣли́тисѧ ѿ негѡ̀ ѿ недꙋ̑гъ свои́хъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| But he withdrew himself in the deserts, and prayed. | То́й же бѣ̀ ѿходѧ̀ въ пꙋсты́ню и҆ молѧ́сѧ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And it came to pass on one of those days, that he was teaching; and there were Pharisees and doctors of the law sitting by, who were come out of every village of Galilee and Judea and Jerusalem: and the power of the Lord was present to heal them. | (Заⷱ҇ ѳ҃і҃.) И҆ бы́сть во є҆ди́нъ ѿ дні́й, и҆ то́й бѣ̀ оу҆чѧ̀: и҆ бѣ́хꙋ сѣдѧ́ще фарїсе́є и҆ законоꙋчи́телїе, и҆̀же бѣ́хꙋ пришлѝ ѿ всѧ́кїѧ ве́си галїле́йскїѧ и҆ і҆ꙋде́йскїѧ и҆ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мскїѧ: и҆ си́ла гдⷭ҇нѧ бѣ̀ и҆сцѣлѧ́ющи и҆̀хъ: |
|
18
|
18
|
| And behold, men bring on a bed a man that was palsied: and they sought to bring him in, and to lay him before him. | и҆ сѐ мꙋ́жїе носѧ́ще на ѻ҆дрѣ̀ человѣ́ка, и҆́же бѣ̀ разсла́бленъ, и҆ и҆ска́хꙋ внестѝ є҆го̀ и҆ положи́ти пред̾ ни́мъ: |
|
19
|
19
|
| And not finding by what way they might bring him in because of the multitude, they went up to the housetop, and let him down through the tiles with his couch into the midst before Jesus. | и҆ не ѡ҆брѣ́тше кꙋдѣ̀ внестѝ є҆го̀ наро́да ра́ди, взлѣ́зше на хра́мъ, сквозѣ̀ скꙋде́лы [кро́въ скꙋде́льный] низвѣ́сиша є҆го̀ со ѻ҆дро́мъ на средꙋ̀ пред̾ і҆и҃са. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And seeing their faith, he said unto him, Man, thy sins are forgiven thee. | И҆ ви́дѣвъ вѣ́рꙋ и҆́хъ, речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: человѣ́че, ѡ҆ставлѧ́юттисѧ грѣсѝ твоѝ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And the scribes and the Pharisees began to reason, saying, Who is this that speaketh blasphemies? Who can forgive sins, but God alone? | И҆ нача́ша помышлѧ́ти кни́жницы и҆ фарїсе́є, глаго́люще: кто̀ є҆́сть се́й, и҆́же глаго́летъ хꙋлы̑, кто̀ мо́жетъ ѡ҆ставлѧ́ти грѣ́хи, то́кмѡ є҆ди́нъ бг҃ъ; |
|
22
|
22
|
| But Jesus perceiving their reasonings, answered and said unto them, Why reason ye in your hearts? | Разꙋмѣ́въ же і҆и҃съ помышлє́нїѧ и҆́хъ, ѿвѣща́въ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: что̀ помышлѧ́ете въ сердца́хъ ва́шихъ; |
|
23
|
23
|
| Which is easier, to say, Thy sins are forgiven thee; or to say, Arise and walk? | что̀ є҆́сть оу҆до́бѣе, рещѝ: ѡ҆ставлѧ́юттисѧ грѣсѝ твоѝ; и҆лѝ рещѝ: воста́ни и҆ ходѝ; |
|
24
|
24
|
| But that ye may know that the Son of man hath authority on earth to forgive sins (he said unto him that was palsied), I say unto thee, Arise, and take up thy couch, and go unto thy house. | но да оу҆вѣ́сте, ꙗ҆́кѡ вла́сть и҆́мать сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй на землѝ ѿпꙋща́ти грѣхѝ, (речѐ разсла́бленномꙋ:) тебѣ̀ глаго́лю: воста́ни и҆ возмѝ ѻ҆́дръ тво́й, и҆ и҆дѝ въ до́мъ тво́й. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And immediately he rose up before them, and took up that whereon he lay, and departed to his house, glorifying God. | И҆ а҆́бїе воста́въ пред̾ ни́ми, взе́мъ, на не́мже лежа́ше, и҆́де въ до́мъ сво́й, сла́вѧ бг҃а. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And amazement took hold on all, and they glorified God; and they were filled with fear, saying, We have seen strange things today. | И҆ оу҆́жасъ прїѧ́тъ всѣ́хъ, и҆ сла́влѧхꙋ бг҃а: и҆ и҆спо́лнишасѧ стра́ха, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ ви́дѣхомъ пресла̑внаѧ дне́сь. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And after these things he went forth, and beheld a publican, named Levi, sitting at the place of toll, and said unto him, Follow me. | (Заⷱ҇ к҃.) И҆ посе́мъ и҆зы́де, и҆ оу҆зрѣ̀ мытарѧ̀ и҆́менемъ леѵі́ю, сѣдѧ́ща на мы́тницѣ, и҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: и҆дѝ по мнѣ̀. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And he forsook all, and rose up and followed him. | И҆ ѡ҆ста́вль всѧ̑, воста́въ вослѣ́дъ є҆гѡ̀ и҆́де. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And Levi made him a great feast in his house: and there was a great multitude of publicans and of others that were sitting at meat with them. | И҆ сотворѝ оу҆чрежде́нїе ве́лїе леѵі́й є҆мꙋ̀ въ домꙋ̀ свое́мъ: и҆ бѣ̀ наро́дъ мытаре́й мно́гъ, и҆ и҆нѣ́хъ, и҆̀же бѧ́хꙋ съ ни́мъ возлежа́ще. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And their scribes and the Pharisees murmured against his disciples, saying, Why do ye eat and drink with the publicans and sinners? | И҆ ропта́хꙋ кни́жницы на него̀ и҆ фарїсе́є, ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ є҆гѡ̀ глаго́люще: почто̀ съ мытари̑ и҆ грѣ̑шники ꙗ҆́сте и҆ пїе́те; |
|
31
|
31
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto them, They that are in health have no need of a physician; but they that are sick. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: не тре́бꙋютъ здра̑вїи врача̀, но болѧ́щїи: |
|
32
|
32
|
| I am not come to call the righteous but sinners to repentance. | не прїидо́хъ призва́ти пра́ведныхъ, но грѣ̑шныѧ въ покаѧ̑нїе. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And they said unto him, Why do the disciples of John fast often, and make supplications; likewise also the disciples of the Pharisees; but thine eat and drink? | (Заⷱ҇ к҃а҃.) Ѻ҆ни́ же рѣ́ша къ немꙋ̀: почто̀ оу҆ченицы̀ і҆ѡа́нновы постѧ́тсѧ ча́стѡ и҆ моли̑твы творѧ́тъ, та́кожде и҆ фарїсе́йстїи, а҆ твоѝ ꙗ҆дѧ́тъ и҆ пїю́тъ; |
|
34
|
34
|
| And he said unto them, Can ye make the sons of the bridechamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them? | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ къ ни̑мъ: є҆да̀ мо́жете сыны̀ бра̑чныѧ, до́ндеже жени́хъ съ ни́ми є҆́сть, сотвори́ти пости́тисѧ; |
|
35
|
35
|
| But the days will come; and when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, then will they fast in those days. | Прїи́дꙋтъ же дні́е, є҆гда̀ ѿѧ́тъ бꙋ́детъ ѿ ни́хъ жени́хъ, и҆ тогда̀ постѧ́тсѧ въ ты̑ѧ дни̑. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And he spake also a parable unto them: No man putteth a piece of a new garment upon an old garment; else he rendeth the new, and also the piece from the new agreeth not with the old. | Гл҃аше же и҆ при́тчꙋ къ ни̑мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ никто́же приставле́нїѧ ри́зы но́вы приставлѧ́етъ на ри́зꙋ ве́тхꙋ: а҆́ще ли же нѝ, и҆ но́вꙋю раздере́тъ, и҆ ве́тсѣй не согласꙋ́етъ є҆́же ѿ но́вагѡ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And no man putteth new wine into old wineskins; else the new wine will burst the skins, and itself will be spilled, and the skins will perish. | И҆ никто́же влива́етъ вїна̀ но́ва въ мѣ́хи вє́тхи: а҆́ще ли же нѝ, расто́ргнетъ но́вое вїно̀ мѣ́хи, и҆ само̀ и҆злїе́тсѧ, и҆ мѣ́си поги́бнꙋтъ: |
|
38
|
38
|
| But new wine must be put into fresh wineskins; and both are preserved. | но вїно̀ но́вое въ мѣ́хи нѡ́вы влива́ти [подоба́етъ]: и҆ ѻ҆боѧ̑ соблюдꙋ́тсѧ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And no man having drunk old wine straightaway desireth new; for he saith, The old is better. | И҆ никто́же пи́въ ве́тхое, а҆́бїе хо́щетъ но́вагѡ: глаго́летъ бо: ве́тхое лꙋ́чше є҆́сть. |
|
Chapter 6
|
Глава́ ѕ҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now it came to pass on a second-first sabbath, that he was going through the grainfields; and his disciples plucked the ears, and did eat, rubbing them in their hands. |
|
|
2
|
2
|
| But certain of the Pharisees said unto them, Why do ye that which it is not lawful to do on the sabbath day? | Нѣ́цыи же ѿ фарїсє́й рѣ́ша и҆̀мъ: что̀ творитѐ, є҆гѡ́же не досто́итъ твори́ти въ сꙋббѡ̑ты; |
|
3
|
3
|
| And Jesus answered them and said, Have ye not read even this, what David did, when he was hungry, he, and they that were with him; | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: ни лѝ сегѡ̀ члѝ є҆стѐ, є҆́же сотворѝ дв҃дъ, є҆гда̀ взалка́сѧ са́мъ и҆ и҆̀же съ ни́мъ бѧ́хꙋ; |
|
4
|
4
|
| how he entered into the house of God, and took and ate the showbread, and gave also to them that were with him; which it is not lawful to eat save for the priests alone? | ка́кѡ вни́де въ до́мъ бж҃їй, и҆ хлѣ́бы предложе́нїѧ взе́мъ, и҆ ꙗ҆дѐ, и҆ дадѐ и҆ сꙋ́щымъ съ ни́мъ, и҆́хже не досто́ѧше ꙗ҆́сти, то́кмѡ є҆ди́нымъ і҆ере́ємъ; |
|
5
|
5
|
| And he said unto them, The Son of man is lord even of the sabbath. | И҆ глаго́лаше и҆̀мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ госпо́дь є҆́сть сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй и҆ сꙋббѡ́тѣ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And it came to pass also on another sabbath, that he entered into the synagogue and taught: and there was a man there, and his right hand was withered. | Бы́сть же и҆ въ дрꙋгꙋ́ю сꙋббѡ́тꙋ вни́ти є҆мꙋ̀ въ со́нмище и҆ оу҆чи́ти: и҆ бѣ̀ та́мѡ человѣ́къ, и҆ рꙋка̀ є҆мꙋ̀ десна́ѧ бѣ̀ сꙋха̀. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And the scribes and the Pharisees watched, whether he would heal on the sabbath; that they might find an accusation against him. | Назира́хꙋ же кни́жницы и҆ фарїсє́и, а҆́ще въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ и҆сцѣли́тъ, да ѡ҆брѧ́щꙋтъ рѣ́чь на́нь. |
|
8
|
8
|
| But he knew their thoughts; and he said to the man that had his hand withered, Rise up, and stand forth in the midst. And he arose and stood forth. | Ѻ҆́нъ же вѣ́дѧше помышлє́нїѧ и҆́хъ, и҆ речѐ человѣ́кꙋ и҆мꙋ́щемꙋ сꙋ́хꙋ рꙋ́кꙋ: воста́ни и҆ ста́ни посредѣ̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же воста́въ ста̀. |
|
9
|
9
|
| Then Jesus said unto them, I will ask you something, Is it lawful on the sabbath to do good, or to do harm? to save a life, or to kill? | Рече́ же і҆и҃съ къ ни̑мъ: вопрошꙋ̀ вы̀: что̀ досто́итъ въ сꙋббѡ̑ты, добро̀ твори́ти, и҆лѝ ѕло̀ твори́ти; дꙋ́шꙋ спⷭ҇тѝ, и҆лѝ погꙋби́ти; Ѻ҆ни́ же оу҆молча́ша. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And he looked round about on them all, and said unto him, Stretch forth thy hand. And he did so: and his hand was restored whole as the other. | И҆ воззрѣ́въ на всѣ́хъ и҆́хъ, речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: прострѝ рꙋ́кꙋ твою̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же сотворѝ та́кѡ: и҆ оу҆тверди́сѧ рꙋка̀ є҆гѡ̀ здра́ва ꙗ҆́кѡ дрꙋга́ѧ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| But they were filled with madness; and communed one with another what they might do to Jesus. | Ѻ҆ни́ же и҆спо́лнишасѧ безꙋ́мїѧ, и҆ глаго́лахꙋ дрꙋ́гъ ко дрꙋ́гꙋ, что̀ бы́ша сотвори́ли і҆и҃сови. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And it came to pass in these days, that he went out into the mountain to pray; and he continued all night in prayer to God. |
|
|
13
|
13
|
| And when it was day, he called his disciples; and he chose from them twelve, whom also he named apostles: | И҆ є҆гда̀ бы́сть де́нь, призва̀ оу҆чн҃кѝ своѧ̑: и҆ и҆збра̀ ѿ ни́хъ двана́десѧте, и҆̀хже и҆ а҆пⷭ҇лы наречѐ: |
|
14
|
14
|
| Simon, whom he also named Peter, and Andrew his brother, James and John, Philip and Bartholomew, | сі́мѡна, є҆го́же и҆менова̀ петра̀, и҆ а҆ндре́а бра́та є҆гѡ̀, і҆а́кѡва и҆ і҆ѡа́нна, фїлі́ппа и҆ варѳоломе́а, |
|
15
|
15
|
| Matthew and Thomas, James the son of Alphaeus, and Simon who was called the Zealot, | матѳе́а и҆ ѳѡмꙋ̀, і҆а́кѡва а҆лфе́ева и҆ сїмѡ́на нарица́емаго зилѡ́та, |
|
16
|
16
|
| Judas the son of James, and Judas Iscariot, who also became a traitor; | і҆ꙋ́дꙋ і҆а́кѡвлѧ, и҆ і҆ꙋ́дꙋ і҆скарїѡ́тскаго, и҆́же и҆ бы́сть преда́тель. |
|
17
|
17
|
| and he came down with them, and stood on a level place, and a multitude of his disciples, and a great number of the people from all Judea and Jerusalem, and the seacoast of Tyre and Sidon, who came to hear him, and to be healed of their diseases; |
|
|
18
|
18
|
| and they that were vexed by unclean spirits: and they were healed. | и҆̀же прїидо́ша послꙋ́шати є҆гѡ̀ и҆ и҆сцѣли́тисѧ ѿ недꙋ̑гъ свои́хъ, и҆ стра́ждꙋщїи ѿ дꙋ̑хъ нечи́стыхъ: и҆ и҆сцѣлѧ́хꙋсѧ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And all the multitude sought to touch him; for power came forth from him, and healed them all. | И҆ ве́сь наро́дъ и҆ска́ше прикаса́тисѧ є҆мꙋ̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ си́ла ѿ негѡ̀ и҆схожда́ше и҆ и҆сцѣлѧ́ше всѧ̑. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And he lifted up his eyes on his disciples, and said, Blessed are ye poor: for yours is the kingdom of God. | И҆ то́й возве́дъ ѻ҆́чи своѝ на оу҆чн҃кѝ своѧ̑, глаго́лаше: блаже́ни ни́щїи дꙋ́хомъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ ва́ше є҆́сть црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
21
|
21
|
| Blessed are ye that hunger now: for ye shall be filled. Blessed are ye that weep now: for ye shall laugh. | Блаже́ни, а҆́лчꙋщїи нн҃ѣ: ꙗ҆́кѡ насы́титесѧ. Блаже́ни, пла́чꙋщїи нн҃ѣ: ꙗ҆́кѡ возсмѣе́тесѧ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| Blessed are ye, when men shall hate you, and when they shall separate you from their company, and reproach you, and cast out your name as evil, for the Son of man’s sake. | Блаже́ни бꙋ́дете, є҆гда̀ возненави́дѧтъ ва́съ человѣ́цы, и҆ є҆гда̀ разлꙋча́тъ вы̀, и҆ поно́сѧтъ, и҆ пронесꙋ́тъ и҆́мѧ ва́ше ꙗ҆́кѡ ѕло̀, сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческагѡ ра́ди. |
|
23
|
23
|
| Rejoice in that day, and leap for joy: for behold, your reward is great in heaven; for in the same manner did their fathers unto the prophets. | Возра́дꙋйтесѧ въ то́й де́нь и҆ взыгра́йте: се́ бо мзда̀ ва́ша мно́га на нб҃сѝ. По си̑мъ бо творѧ́хꙋ прⷪ҇ро́кѡмъ ѻ҆тцы̀ и҆́хъ. |
|
24
|
24
|
| But woe unto you that are rich! for ye have received your consolation. |
|
|
25
|
25
|
| Woe unto you, ye that are full! for ye shall hunger. Woe unto you, ye that laugh now! for ye shall mourn and weep. | Го́ре ва́мъ, насы́щеннїи нн҃ѣ: ꙗ҆́кѡ вза́лчете. Го́ре ва́мъ смѣю́щымсѧ нн҃ѣ: ꙗ҆́кѡ возрыда́ете и҆ воспла́чете. |
|
26
|
26
|
| Woe, when men shall speak well of you! for in the same manner did their fathers to the false prophets. | Го́ре, є҆гда̀ до́брѣ рекꙋ́тъ ва́мъ всѝ человѣ́цы: по си̑мъ бо творѧ́хꙋ лжепроро́кѡмъ ѻ҆тцы̀ и҆́хъ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| But I say unto you that hear, Love your enemies, do good to them that hate you, | Но ва́мъ глаго́лю слы́шащымъ: люби́те врагѝ ва́шѧ, добро̀ твори́те ненави́дѧщымъ ва́съ, |
|
28
|
28
|
| bless them that curse you, pray for them that despitefully use you. | благослови́те кленꙋ́щыѧ вы̀, и҆ моли́тесѧ за творѧ́щихъ ва́мъ ѡ҆би́дꙋ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| To him that smiteth thee on the one cheek offer also the other; and from him that taketh away thy cloak withhold not thy coat also. | Бїю́щемꙋ тѧ̀ въ лани́тꙋ, пода́ждь и҆ дрꙋгꙋ́ю: и҆ ѿ взима́ющагѡ тѝ ри́зꙋ, и҆ срачи́цꙋ не возбранѝ. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And give to everyone that asketh thee; and of him that taketh away thy goods ask them not again. | Всѧ́комꙋ же просѧ́щемꙋ оу҆ тебє̀, да́й: и҆ ѿ взима́ющаго твоѧ̑, не и҆стѧзꙋ́й. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And as ye would that men should do to you, do ye also to them likewise. |
|
|
32
|
32
|
| And if ye love them that love you, what thank have ye? for even sinners love those that love them. | И҆ а҆́ще лю́бите лю́бѧщыѧ вы̀, ка́ѧ ва́мъ благода́ть є҆́сть; и҆́бо и҆ грѣ̑шницы лю́бѧщыѧ и҆́хъ лю́бѧтъ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And if ye do good to them that do good to you, what thank have ye? for even sinners do the same. | И҆ а҆́ще благотворитѐ благотворѧ́щымъ ва́мъ, ка́ѧ ва́мъ благода́ть є҆́сть; и҆́бо и҆ грѣ̑шницы то́жде творѧ́тъ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And if ye lend to them of whom ye hope to receive back, what thank have ye? for even sinners lend to sinners, to receive again as much. | И҆ а҆́ще взаи́мъ даетѐ, ѿ ни́хже ча́ете воспрїѧ́ти, ка́ѧ ва́мъ благода́ть є҆́сть, и҆́бо и҆ грѣ̑шницы грѣ́шникѡмъ взаи́мъ дава́ютъ, да воспрїи́мꙋтъ ра̑внаѧ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| But love your enemies, and do them good, and lend, never despairing; and your reward shall be great, and ye shall be sons of the Most High: for he is kind toward the unthankful and evil. | Ѻ҆ба́че люби́те врагѝ ва́шѧ, и҆ благотвори́те, и҆ взаи́мъ да́йте, ничесѡ́же ча́юще: и҆ бꙋ́детъ мзда̀ ва́ша мно́га, и҆ бꙋ́дете сы́нове вы́шнѧгѡ: ꙗ҆́кѡ то́й бл҃гъ є҆́сть на безблагода̑тныѧ [неблагода̑рныѧ] и҆ ѕлы̑ѧ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| Be ye therefore merciful, even as your Father also is merciful. | Бꙋ́дите оу҆̀бо милосе́рди, ꙗ҆́коже и҆ ѻ҆ц҃ъ ва́шъ милосе́рдъ є҆́сть. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And judge not, and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be condemned: release, and ye shall be released: |
|
|
38
|
38
|
| give, and it shall be given unto you; good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over, shall they give into your bosom. For with the same measure ye mete it shall be measured to you again. | да́йте, и҆ да́стсѧ ва́мъ: мѣ́рꙋ добрꙋ̀, натка́нꙋ и҆ потрѧ́снꙋ и҆ прелива́ющꙋсѧ дадѧ́тъ на ло́но ва́ше: то́ю бо мѣ́рою, є҆́юже мѣ́рите, возмѣ́ритсѧ ва́мъ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And he spake a parable unto them, Can the blind guide the blind? shall they not both fall into a pit? | Рече́ же при́тчꙋ и҆̀мъ: є҆да̀ мо́жетъ слѣпе́цъ слѣпца̀ води́ти; не ѻ҆́ба ли въ ꙗ҆́мꙋ впаде́тасѧ; |
|
40
|
40
|
| The disciple is not above his teacher: but everyone when he is perfected shall be as his teacher. | Нѣ́сть оу҆чени̑къ над̾ оу҆чи́телѧ своего̀: соверше́нъ же всѧ́къ бꙋ́детъ, ꙗ҆́коже (и҆) оу҆чи́тель є҆гѡ̀. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And why beholdest thou the mote that is in thy brother’s eye, but considerest not the beam that is in thine own eye? | Что́ же ви́диши сꙋче́цъ, и҆́же є҆́сть во ѻ҆чесѝ бра́та твоегѡ̀, бервна́ же, є҆́же є҆́сть во ѻ҆чесѝ твое́мъ, не чꙋ́еши; |
|
42
|
42
|
| Or how canst thou say to thy brother, Brother, let me cast out the mote that is in thine eye, when thou thyself beholdest not the beam that is in thine own eye? Thou hypocrite, cast out first the beam out of thine own eye, and then shalt thou see clearly to cast out the mote that is in thy brother’s eye. | И҆лѝ ка́кѡ мо́жеши рещѝ бра́тꙋ твоемꙋ̀: бра́те, ѡ҆ста́ви, да и҆змꙋ̀ сꙋче́цъ, и҆́же є҆́сть во ѻ҆чесѝ твое́мъ, са́мъ сꙋ́щагѡ во ѻ҆чесѝ твое́мъ бервна̀ не ви́дѧ; Лицемѣ́ре, и҆змѝ пе́рвѣе бервно̀ и҆з̾ ѻ҆чесѐ твоегѡ̀, и҆ тогда̀ про́зриши и҆з̾ѧ́ти сꙋче́цъ и҆з̾ ѻ҆чесѐ бра́та твоегѡ̀. |
|
43
|
43
|
| For there is no good tree that bringeth forth corrupt fruit; nor a corrupt tree that bringeth forth good fruit. | Нѣ́сть бо дре́во добро̀, творѧ̀ плода̀ ѕла̀: нижѐ дре́во ѕло̀, творѧ̀ плода̀ добра̀. |
|
44
|
44
|
| For each tree is known by its own fruit. For of thorns men do not gather figs, nor of a bramble bush gather they grapes. | Всѧ́ко бо дре́во ѿ плода̀ своегѡ̀ познае́тсѧ: не ѿ те́рнїѧ бо че́шꙋтъ смѡ́квы, ни ѿ кꙋпины̀ є҆́млютъ грѡ́здїѧ. |
|
45
|
45
|
| The good man out of the good treasure of his heart bringeth forth that which is good; and the evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart bringeth forth that which is evil: for out of the abundance of the heart his mouth speaketh. | Бл҃гі́й человѣ́къ ѿ бл҃га́гѡ сокро́вища се́рдца своегѡ̀ и҆зно́ситъ бл҃го́е: и҆ ѕлы́й человѣ́къ ѿ ѕла́гѡ сокро́вища се́рдца своегѡ̀ и҆зно́ситъ ѕло́е: ѿ и҆збы́тка бо се́рдца глаго́лютъ оу҆ста̀ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And why call ye me, Lord, Lord, and do not the things which I say? |
|
|
47
|
47
|
| Everyone that cometh unto me, and heareth my words, and doeth them, I will show you to whom he is like: | Всѧ́къ грѧды́й ко мнѣ̀ и҆ слы́шай словеса̀ моѧ̑ и҆ творѧ̀ ѧ҆̀, скажꙋ̀ ва́мъ, комꙋ̀ є҆́сть подо́бенъ: |
|
48
|
48
|
| he is like a man building a house, who dug and went deep, and laid a foundation upon the rock: and when a flood arose, the stream brake against that house, and could not shake it: for it had been founded upon the rock. | подо́бенъ є҆́сть человѣ́кꙋ зи́ждꙋщꙋ хра́минꙋ, и҆́же и҆скопа̀ и҆ оу҆глꙋбѝ, и҆ положѝ ѡ҆снова́нїе на ка́мени: наводне́нїю же бы́вшꙋ, припадѐ рѣка̀ ко хра́минѣ то́й, и҆ не мо́же поколеба́ти є҆ѧ̀: ѡ҆снована́ бо бѣ̀ на ка́мени. |
|
49
|
49
|
| But he that heareth, and doeth not, is like a man that built a house upon the earth without a foundation; against which the stream brake, and straightaway it fell; and the ruin of that house was great. | Слы́шавый же и҆ не сотвори́вый подо́бенъ є҆́сть человѣ́кꙋ созда́вшемꙋ хра́минꙋ на землѝ без̾ ѡ҆снова́нїѧ: къ не́йже припадѐ рѣка̀, и҆ а҆́бїе паде́сѧ, и҆ бы́сть разрꙋше́нїе хра́мины тоѧ̀ ве́лїе. |
|
Chapter 7
|
Глава́ з҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now when he had ended all his sayings in the ears of the people, he entered into Capernaum. |
Є҆гда́ же сконча̀ всѧ̑ гл҃го́лы своѧ̑ въ слꙋ́хи лю́демъ, |
|
2
|
2
|
| And a certain centurion’s servant, who was dear unto him, was sick and at the point of death. | Со́тникꙋ же нѣ́коемꙋ ра́бъ болѧ̀ ѕлѣ̀, хотѧ́ше [и҆мѣ́ѧше] оу҆мре́ти, и҆́же бѣ̀ є҆мꙋ̀ че́стенъ. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And when he heard concerning Jesus, he sent unto him elders of the Jews, asking him that he would come and save his servant. | Слы́шавъ же ѡ҆ і҆и҃сѣ, посла̀ къ немꙋ̀ ста́рцы і҆ꙋдє́йскїѧ, молѧ̀ є҆го̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ да прише́дъ сп҃се́тъ раба̀ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And they, when they came to Jesus, besought him earnestly, saying, He is worthy that thou shouldest do this for him; | Ѻ҆ни́ же прише́дше ко і҆и҃сови, молѧ́хꙋ є҆го̀ то́щно, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ досто́инъ є҆́сть, є҆мꙋ́же да́си сїѐ: |
|
5
|
5
|
| for he loveth our nation, and himself built us our synagogue. | лю́битъ бо ꙗ҆зы́къ на́шъ, и҆ со́нмище то́й созда̀ на́мъ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And Jesus went with them. And when he was now not far from the house, the centurion sent friends to him, saying unto him, Lord, trouble not thyself; for I am not worthy that thou shouldest come under my roof: | І҆и҃съ же и҆дѧ́ше съ ни́ми. И҆ оу҆жѐ є҆мꙋ̀ не дале́че сꙋ́щꙋ ѿ хра́мины, посла̀ къ немꙋ̀ со́тникъ дрꙋ́ги, глаго́лѧ є҆мꙋ̀: гдⷭ҇и, не дви́жисѧ: нѣ́смь бо досто́инъ, да под̾ кро́въ мо́й вни́деши: |
|
7
|
7
|
| wherefore neither thought I myself worthy to come unto thee: but say the word, and my servant shall be healed. | тѣ́мже ни себѐ досто́йна сотвори́хъ прїитѝ къ тебѣ̀: но рцы̀ сло́во, и҆ и҆сцѣлѣ́етъ ѻ҆́трокъ мо́й: |
|
8
|
8
|
| For I also am a man set under authority, having under myself soldiers: and I say to this one, Go, and he goeth; and to another, Come, and he cometh; and to my servant, Do this, and he doeth it. | и҆́бо и҆ а҆́зъ человѣ́къ є҆́смь под̾ влады́кою оу҆чине́нъ, и҆мѣ́ѧ под̾ собо́ю во́ины: и҆ глаго́лю семꙋ̀: и҆дѝ, и҆ и҆де́тъ: и҆ дрꙋго́мꙋ: прїидѝ, и҆ прїи́детъ: и҆ рабꙋ̀ моемꙋ̀: сотворѝ сїѐ, и҆ сотвори́тъ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And when Jesus heard these things, he marveled at him, and turned and said unto the multitude that followed him, I say unto you, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. | Слы́шавъ же сїѧ̑ і҆и҃съ, чꙋди́сѧ є҆мꙋ̀, и҆ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ и҆дꙋ́щемꙋ по не́мъ наро́дꙋ речѐ: глаго́лю ва́мъ, ни во і҆и҃ли толи́ки вѣ́ры ѡ҆брѣто́хъ. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And they that were sent, returning to the house, found the servant whole that had been sick. | И҆ возвра́щшесѧ по́сланїи ѡ҆брѣто́ша болѧ́щаго раба̀ и҆сцѣлѣ́вша. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And it came to pass on the next day, that he went to a city called Nain; and many of his disciples went with him, and a great multitude. | (Заⷱ҇ л҃.) И҆ бы́сть посе́мъ, и҆дѧ́ше во гра́дъ, нарица́емый наі́нъ: и҆ съ ни́мъ и҆дѧ́хꙋ оу҆чн҃цы̀ є҆гѡ̀ мно́зи и҆ наро́дъ мно́гъ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| Now when he drew near to the gate of the city, behold, there was carried out one that was dead, the only son of his mother, and she was a widow: and much people of the city was with her. | Ꙗ҆́коже прибли́жисѧ ко вратѡ́мъ гра́да, и҆ сѐ и҆зноша́хꙋ оу҆ме́рша, сы́на є҆диноро́дна ма́тери свое́й, и҆ та̀ бѣ̀ вдова̀: и҆ наро́дъ ѿ гра́да мно́гъ съ не́ю. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And when the Lord saw her, he had compassion on her, and said unto her, Weep not. | И҆ ви́дѣвъ ю҆̀ гдⷭ҇ь, милосе́рдова ѡ҆ не́й, и҆ речѐ є҆́й: не пла́чи. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And he came nigh and touched the bier: and the bearers stood still. And he said, Young man, I say unto thee, Arise. | И҆ пристꙋ́пль коснꙋ́сѧ во ѻ҆́дръ: носѧ́щїи же ста́ша: и҆ речѐ: ю҆́ноше, тебѣ̀ глаго́лю, воста́ни. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he that was dead sat up, and began to speak. And he gave him to his mother. | И҆ сѣ́де ме́ртвый, и҆ нача́тъ глаго́лати: и҆ дадѐ є҆го̀ ма́тери є҆гѡ̀. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And fear took hold on all: and they glorified God, saying, A great prophet is arisen among us: and, God hath visited his people. | Прїѧ́тъ же стра́хъ всѣ́хъ, и҆ сла́влѧхꙋ бг҃а, глаго́люще: ꙗ҆́кѡ прⷪ҇ро́къ ве́лїй воста̀ въ на́съ, и҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ посѣтѝ бг҃ъ люде́й свои́хъ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And this report went forth concerning him in the whole of Judea, and in all the region round about. | (Заⷱ҇ л҃а҃.) И҆ и҆зы́де сло́во сїѐ по все́й і҆ꙋде́и ѡ҆ не́мъ, и҆ по все́й странѣ̀. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And the disciples of John told him of all these things. | И҆ возвѣсти́ша і҆ѡа́ннꙋ оу҆ченицы̀ є҆гѡ̀ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ си́хъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And John calling unto him two of his disciples sent them to Jesus, saying, Art thou he that cometh, or look we for another? | И҆ призва́въ два̀ нѣ̑каѧ ѿ оу҆чени̑къ свои́хъ і҆ѡа́ннъ, посла̀ ко і҆и҃сꙋ, глаго́лѧ: ты́ ли є҆сѝ грѧды́й, и҆лѝ и҆но́гѡ ча́емъ; |
|
20
|
20
|
| And when the men were come unto him, they said, John the Baptist hath sent us unto thee, saying, Art thou he that cometh, or look we for another? | Пришє́дша же къ немꙋ̀ мꙋ̑жа рѣ́ста: і҆ѡа́ннъ крⷭ҇ти́тель посла̀ на́съ къ тебѣ̀, глаго́лѧ: ты́ ли є҆сѝ грѧды́й, и҆лѝ и҆но́гѡ ча́емъ; |
|
21
|
21
|
| And in that same hour he cured many of diseases and plagues and evil spirits; and on many that were blind he bestowed sight. | Въ то́й же ча́съ и҆сцѣлѝ мнѡ́ги ѿ недꙋ̑гъ и҆ ра̑нъ и҆ дꙋ̑хъ ѕлы́хъ, и҆ мнѡ́гимъ слѣпы̑мъ дарова̀ прозрѣ́нїе. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto them, Go and tell John the things which ye have seen and heard; that the blind receive their sight, the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, the deaf hear, the dead are raised up, the poor have good tidings preached to them. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ и҆́ма: шє́дша возвѣсти́та і҆ѡа́ннꙋ, ꙗ҆̀же ви́дѣста и҆ слы́шаста: ꙗ҆́кѡ слѣпі́и прозира́ютъ, хро́мїи хо́дѧтъ, прокаже́ннїи ѡ҆чища́ютсѧ, глꙋсі́и слы́шатъ, ме́ртвїи востаю́тъ, ни́щїи благовѣствꙋ́ютъ: |
|
23
|
23
|
| And blessed is he, whosoever shall find no occasion of stumbling in me. | и҆ блаже́нъ є҆́сть, и҆́же а҆́ще не соблазни́тсѧ ѡ҆ мнѣ̀. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And when the messengers of John were departed, he began to say unto the multitudes concerning John, What went ye out into the wilderness to behold? a reed shaken with the wind? | Ѿше́дшема же оу҆ченико́ма і҆ѡа́нновома, нача́тъ глаго́лати къ наро́дѡмъ ѡ҆ і҆ѡа́ннѣ: чесѡ̀ и҆зыдо́сте въ пꙋсты́ню ви́дѣти, тро́сть ли вѣ́тромъ коле́блемꙋ; |
|
25
|
25
|
| But what went ye out to see? a man clothed in soft raiment? Behold, they that are gorgeously appareled, and live delicately, are in kings’ courts. | Но чесѡ̀ и҆зыдо́сте ви́дѣти; человѣ́ка ли въ мѧ̑гки ри̑зы ѡ҆дѣ́ѧна; Сѐ, и҆̀же во ѻ҆де́жди сла́внѣй и҆ пи́щи сꙋ́щїи, во ца́рствїи [во дво́рѣхъ ца́рскихъ] сꙋ́ть. |
|
26
|
26
|
| But what went ye out to see? a prophet? Yea, I say unto you, and much more than a prophet. | Но чесѡ̀ и҆зыдо́сте ви́дѣти; прⷪ҇ро́ка ли; Є҆́й, глаго́лю ва́мъ, и҆ ли́шше прⷪ҇ро́ка. |
|
27
|
27
|
| This is he of whom it is written, Behold, I send my messenger before thy face, Who shall prepare thy way before thee. | Се́й (бо) є҆́сть, ѡ҆ не́мже пи́сано є҆́сть: сѐ а҆́зъ послю̀ а҆́гг҃ла моего̀ пред̾ лице́мъ твои́мъ, и҆́же оу҆стро́итъ пꙋ́ть тво́й пред̾ тобо́ю. |
|
28
|
28
|
| For I say unto you, Among them that are born of women there is not a greater prophet than John the Baptist: yet he that is but little in the kingdom of God is greater than he. | Глаго́лю бо ва́мъ: бо́лїй въ рожде́нныхъ жена́ми прⷪ҇ро́ка і҆ѡа́нна крⷭ҇ти́телѧ никто́же є҆́сть: мні́й же во црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи, бо́лїи є҆гѡ̀ є҆́сть. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And all the people when they heard, and the publicans, justified God, being baptized with the baptism of John. | И҆ всѝ лю́дїе слы́шавше и҆ мы́тарїе, ѡ҆правди́ша бг҃а, кре́щшесѧ креще́нїемъ і҆ѡа́нновымъ: |
|
30
|
30
|
| But the Pharisees and the lawyers rejected for themselves the counsel of God, being not baptized of him. | фарїсе́є же и҆ зако́нницы совѣ́тъ бж҃їй ѿверго́ша ѡ҆ себѣ̀, не кре́щшесѧ ѿ негѡ̀. |
|
31
|
31
|
| Whereunto then shall I liken the men of this generation, and to what are they like? |
|
|
32
|
32
|
| They are like unto children that sit in the marketplace, and call one to another, and say, We piped unto you, and ye did not dance; we wailed unto you, and ye did not weep. | Подо́бни сꙋ́ть ѻ҆́трочищємъ сѣдѧ́щымъ на то́ржищихъ и҆ приглаша́ющымъ дрꙋ́гъ дрꙋ́га, и҆ глаго́лющымъ: писка́хомъ ва́мъ, и҆ не плѧса́сте: рыда́хомъ ва́мъ, и҆ не пла́касте. |
|
33
|
33
|
| For John the Baptist is come eating no bread nor drinking wine; and ye say, He hath a demon. | Прїи́де бо і҆ѡа́ннъ крⷭ҇ти́тель ни хлѣ́ба ꙗ҆ды́й, ни вїна̀ пїѧ̀, и҆ глаго́лете: бѣ́сѧ и҆́мать. |
|
34
|
34
|
| The Son of man is come eating and drinking; and ye say, Behold, a gluttonous man, and a winebibber, a friend of publicans and sinners! | Прїи́де сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй ꙗ҆ды́й и҆ пїѧ̀, и҆ глаго́лете: се́й человѣ́къ ꙗ҆́дца и҆ вїнопі́йца, дрꙋ́гъ мытарє́мъ и҆ грѣ́шникѡмъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And wisdom is justified of all her children. | И҆ ѡ҆правди́сѧ премꙋ́дрость ѿ ча̑дъ свои́хъ всѣ́хъ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And one of the Pharisees desired him that he would eat with him. And he entered into the Pharisee’s house, and sat down to meat. |
|
|
37
|
37
|
| And behold, a woman in the city, who was a sinner, when she knew that he was sitting at meat in the Pharisee’s house, she brought an alabaster cruse of ointment, | И҆ сѐ жена̀ во гра́дѣ, ꙗ҆́же бѣ̀ грѣ́шница, и҆ оу҆вѣ́дѣвши, ꙗ҆́кѡ возлежи́тъ во хра́минѣ фарїсе́овѣ, прине́сши а҆лава́стръ мѵ́ра, |
|
38
|
38
|
| and standing at his feet behind him, weeping, she began to wet his feet with her tears, and wiped them with the hair of her head, and kissed his feet, and anointed them with the ointment. | и҆ ста́вши при ногꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀ созадѝ, пла́чꙋщисѧ, нача́тъ оу҆мыва́ти но́зѣ є҆гѡ̀ слеза́ми, и҆ власы̑ главы̀ своеѧ̀ ѡ҆тира́ше, и҆ ѡ҆блобыза́ше но́зѣ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ ма́заше мѵ́ромъ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| Now when the Pharisee that had bidden him saw it, he spake within himself, saying, This man, if he were a prophet, would have perceived who and what manner of woman this is that toucheth him, that she is a sinner. | Ви́дѣвъ же фарїсе́й воззва́вый є҆го̀, речѐ въ себѣ̀, глаго́лѧ се́й а҆́ще бы бы́лъ прⷪ҇ро́къ, вѣ́дѣлъ бы кто̀ и҆ какова̀ жена̀ прикаса́етсѧ є҆мꙋ̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ грѣ́шница є҆́сть. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto him, Simon, I have somewhat to say unto thee. And he saith, Teacher, say on. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ къ немꙋ̀: сі́мѡне, и҆́мамъ тѝ нѣ́что рещѝ. Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: оу҆чи́телю, рцы̀. |
|
41
|
41
|
| A certain lender had two debtors: the one owed five hundred denarii, and the other fifty. | І҆и҃съ же речѐ: два̀ должника̑ бѣ́ста заимода́вцꙋ нѣ́коемꙋ: є҆ди́нъ бѣ̀ до́лженъ пѧтїю́сѡтъ дина̑рїи, дрꙋгі́й же пѧтїю́десѧтъ: |
|
42
|
42
|
| And when they had not wherewith to pay, he forgave them both. Tell me therefore, which of them will love him most? | не и҆мꙋ́щема же и҆́ма возда́ти, ѻ҆бѣ́ма ѿда̀ [ѡ҆ста́ви]. Кото́рый оу҆̀бо є҆ю̀, рцы̀, па́че возлю́битъ є҆го̀; |
|
43
|
43
|
| And Simon answered and said, He, I suppose, to whom he forgave the most. And he said unto him, Thou hast rightly judged. | Ѿвѣща́въ же сі́мѡнъ речѐ: мню̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆мꙋ́же вѧ́щше ѿда̀ [ѡ҆ста́ви]. Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: пра́вѡ сꙋди́лъ є҆сѝ. |
|
44
|
44
|
| And turning to the woman, he said unto Simon, Seest thou this woman? I entered into thy house, thou gavest no water for my feet: but she hath wetted my feet with her tears, and wiped them with the hair of her head. | И҆ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ къ женѣ̀, сі́мѡнови речѐ: ви́диши ли сїю̀ женꙋ̀; Внидо́хъ въ до́мъ тво́й, воды̀ на но́зѣ моѝ не да́лъ є҆сѝ: сїѧ́ же слеза́ми ѡ҆блїѧ̀ мѝ но́зѣ и҆ власы̑ главы̀ своеѧ̀ ѡ҆трѐ. |
|
45
|
45
|
| Thou gavest me no kiss: but she, since the time I came in, hath not ceased to kiss my feet. | Лобза́нїѧ мѝ не да́лъ є҆сѝ: сїѧ́ же, ѿне́лиже внидо́хъ, не преста̀ ѡ҆блобыза́ющи мѝ но́зѣ. |
|
46
|
46
|
| My head with oil thou didst not anoint: but she hath anointed my feet with ointment. | Ма́сломъ главы̀ моеѧ̀ не пома́залъ є҆сѝ: сїѧ́ же мѵ́ромъ пома́за мѝ но́зѣ. |
|
47
|
47
|
| Wherefore I say unto thee, Her sins, which are many, are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, the same loveth little. | Є҆гѡ́же ра́ди, глаго́лю тѝ: ѿпꙋща́ютсѧ грѣсѝ є҆ѧ̀ мно́зи, ꙗ҆́кѡ возлюбѝ мно́гѡ: а҆ є҆мꙋ́же ма́лѡ ѡ҆ставлѧ́етсѧ, ме́нше лю́битъ. |
|
48
|
48
|
| And he said unto her, Thy sins are forgiven. | Рече́ же є҆́й: ѿпꙋща́ютсѧ тебѣ̀ грѣсѝ. |
|
49
|
49
|
| And they that sat at meat with him began to say within themselves, Who is this that even forgiveth sins? | И҆ нача́ша возлежа́щїи съ ни́мъ глаго́лати въ себѣ̀: кто̀ се́й є҆́сть, и҆́же и҆ грѣхѝ ѿпꙋща́етъ; |
|
50
|
50
|
| And he said unto the woman, Thy faith hath saved thee; go in peace. | Рече́ же къ женѣ̀: вѣ́ра твоѧ̀ сп҃се́ тѧ: и҆дѝ въ ми́рѣ. |
|
Chapter 8
|
Глава́ и҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And it came to pass soon afterward, that he went about through cities and villages, preaching and bringing the good tidings of the kingdom of God, and with him the twelve, |
|
|
2
|
2
|
| and certain women who had been healed of evil spirits and infirmities: Mary that was called Magdalene, from whom seven demons had gone out, | и҆ жєны̀ нѣ̑кїѧ, ꙗ҆̀же бѧ́хꙋ и҆сцѣ́лєны ѿ дꙋхѡ́въ ѕлы́хъ и҆ недꙋ̑гъ: марі́а нарица́емаѧ магдали́на, и҆з̾ неѧ́же бѣсѡ́въ се́дмь и҆зы́де, |
|
3
|
3
|
| and Joanna the wife of Chuza Herod’s steward, and Susanna, and many others, who ministered unto them of their substance. | и҆ і҆ѡа́нна жена̀ хꙋза́нѧ, приста́вника и҆́рѡдова, и҆ сꙋса́нна, и҆ и҆́ны мнѡ́ги, ꙗ҆̀же слꙋжа́хꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ ѿ и҆мѣ́нїй свои́хъ. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And when a great multitude came together, and they of every city resorted unto him, he spake by a parable: | Разꙋмѣва́ющꙋ же наро́дꙋ мно́гꙋ, и҆ ѿ всѣ́хъ градѡ́въ грѧдꙋ́щымъ къ немꙋ̀, речѐ при́тчꙋ: |
|
5
|
5
|
| The sower went forth to sow his seed: and as he sowed, some fell by the wayside; and it was trodden under foot, and the birds of the heaven devoured it. |
|
|
6
|
6
|
| And other fell on the rock; and as soon as it grew, it withered away, because it had no moisture. | а҆ дрꙋго́е падѐ на ка́мени, и҆ прозѧ́бъ оу҆́сше, занѐ не и҆мѣ́ѧше вла́ги: |
|
7
|
7
|
| And other fell amidst the thorns; and the thorns grew with it, and choked it. | и҆ дрꙋго́е падѐ посредѣ̀ те́рнїѧ, и҆ возрастѐ те́рнїе, и҆ подавѝ є҆̀: |
|
8
|
8
|
| And other fell into the good ground, and grew, and brought forth fruit a hundredfold. As he said these things, he cried, He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. | дрꙋго́е же падѐ на землѝ бла́зѣ, и҆ прозѧ́бъ сотворѝ пло́дъ стори́цею. Сїѧ̑ глаго́лѧ, возгласѝ: и҆мѣ́ѧй оу҆́шы слы́шати, да слы́шитъ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And his disciples asked him, saying, What might this parable be? | Вопроша́хꙋ же є҆го̀ оу҆чн҃цы̀ є҆гѡ̀, глаго́люще: что̀ є҆́сть при́тча сїѧ̀; |
|
10
|
10
|
| And he said, Unto you it is given to know the mysteries of the kingdom of God: but to the rest in parables; that seeing they may not see, and hearing they may not understand. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: ва́мъ є҆́сть дано̀ вѣ́дати та́йны црⷭ҇твїѧ бж҃їѧ, про́чымъ же въ при́тчахъ, да ви́дѧще не ви́дѧтъ и҆ слы́шаще не разꙋмѣ́ютъ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| Now the parable is this: The seed is the word of God. | Є҆́сть же сїѧ̀ при́тча: сѣ́мѧ є҆́сть сло́во бж҃їе: |
|
12
|
12
|
| And those by the wayside are they that hear; then cometh the devil, and taketh away the word from their heart, that they may not believe and be saved. | а҆ и҆̀же при пꙋтѝ, сꙋ́ть слы́шащїи, пото́мъ же прихо́дитъ дїа́волъ и҆ взе́млетъ сло́во ѿ се́рдца и҆́хъ, да не вѣ́ровавше спасꙋ́тсѧ: |
|
13
|
13
|
| And those on the rock are they who, when they have heard, receive the word with joy; and these have no root, who for a while believe, and in time of temptation fall away. | а҆ и҆̀же на ка́мени, и҆̀же є҆гда̀ оу҆слы́шатъ, съ ра́достїю прїе́млютъ сло́во: и҆ сїѝ ко́рене не и҆́мꙋтъ, и҆̀же во вре́мѧ вѣ́рꙋютъ, и҆ во вре́мѧ напа́сти ѿпада́ютъ: |
|
14
|
14
|
| And that which fell among the thorns, these are they that have heard, and as they go on their way they are choked with cares and riches and pleasures of this life, and bring no fruit to perfection. | а҆ є҆́же въ те́рнїи па́дшее, сі́и сꙋ́ть слы́шавшїи, и҆ ѿ печа́ли и҆ бога́тства и҆ сластьмѝ жите́йскими ходѧ́ще подавлѧ́ютсѧ, и҆ не соверша́ютъ плода̀: |
|
15
|
15
|
| And that in the good ground, these are such as in an honest and good heart, having heard the word, hold it fast, and bring forth fruit with patience. | а҆ и҆̀же на до́брѣй землѝ, сі́и сꙋ́ть, и҆̀же до́брымъ се́рдцемъ и҆ благи́мъ слы́шавше сло́во, держа́тъ и҆ пло́дъ творѧ́тъ въ терпѣ́нїи. Сїѧ̑ гл҃ѧ, возгласѝ: и҆мѣ́ѧй оу҆́шы слы́шати да слы́шитъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And no man, when he hath lighted a lamp, covereth it with a vessel, or putteth it under a bed; but putteth it on a stand, that they that enter in may see the light. |
|
|
17
|
17
|
| For nothing is hidden, that shall not be made manifest; nor anything secret, that shall not be known and come to light. | Нѣ́сть бо та́йно, є҆́же не ꙗ҆́влено бꙋ́детъ: нижѐ оу҆тае́но, є҆́же не позна́етсѧ и҆ въ ꙗ҆вле́нїе прїи́детъ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| Take heed therefore how ye hear: for whosoever hath, to him shall be given; and whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken away even that which he thinketh he hath. | Блюди́тесѧ оу҆̀бо, ка́кѡ слы́шите: и҆́же бо и҆́мать, да́стсѧ є҆мꙋ̀: и҆ и҆́же а҆́ще не и҆́мать, и҆ є҆́же мни́тсѧ и҆мѣ́ѧ, во́зметсѧ ѿ негѡ̀. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And there came to him his mother and brethren, and they could not come at him for the crowd. | Прїидо́ша же къ немꙋ̀ мт҃и и҆ бра́тїѧ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ не можа́хꙋ бесѣ́довати къ немꙋ̀ наро́да ра́ди. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And it was told him, saying, Thy mother and thy brethren stand without, desiring to see thee. | И҆ возвѣсти́ша є҆мꙋ̀, глаго́люще: мт҃и твоѧ̀ и҆ бра́тїѧ твоѧ̑ внѣ̀ стоѧ́тъ, ви́дѣти тѧ̀ хотѧ́ще. |
|
21
|
21
|
| But he answered and said unto them, My mother and my brethren are these that hear the word of God, and do it. | Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿвѣща́въ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: ма́ти моѧ̀ и҆ бра́тїѧ моѧ̑ сі́и сꙋ́ть, слы́шащїи сло́во бж҃їе, и҆ творѧ́щїи є҆̀. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And it came to pass on one of those days, that he entered into a boat, himself and his disciples; and he said unto them, Let us go over unto the other side of the lake: and they launched forth. |
|
|
23
|
23
|
| But as they sailed he fell asleep: and there came down a storm of wind on the lake; and they were filling with water, and were in jeopardy. | И҆дꙋ́щымъ же и҆̀мъ, оу҆́спе. И҆ сни́де бꙋ́рѧ вѣ́тренаѧ въ є҆́зеро, и҆ скончава́хꙋсѧ, и҆ въ бѣдѣ̀ бѣ́хꙋ. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And they came to him, and awoke him, saying, Master, master, we perish. And he arose, and rebuked the wind and the raging of the water: and they ceased, and there was a calm. | И҆ пристꙋ́пльше воздвиго́ша є҆го̀, глаго́люще: наста́вниче, наста́вниче, погиба́емъ. Ѻ҆́нъ же воста́въ запретѝ вѣ́трꙋ и҆ волне́нїю во́дномꙋ: и҆ оу҆лего́ста, и҆ бы́сть тишина̀. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And he said unto them, Where is your faith? And being afraid they marveled, saying one to another, Who then is this, that he commandeth even the winds and the water, and they obey him? | Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: гдѣ̀ є҆́сть вѣ́ра ва́ша; Оу҆боѧ́вшесѧ же чꙋди́шасѧ, глаго́люще дрꙋ́гъ ко дрꙋ́гꙋ: кто̀ оу҆̀бо се́й є҆́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆ вѣ́трѡмъ повелѣва́етъ и҆ водѣ̀, и҆ послꙋ́шаютъ є҆гѡ̀; |
|
26
|
26
|
| And they arrived at the country of the Gadarenes, which is over against Galilee. | (Заⷱ҇ л҃и҃.) И҆ преидо́ша во странꙋ̀ гадари́нскꙋ, ꙗ҆́же є҆́сть ѡ҆б̾ ѡ҆́нъ по́лъ галїле́и. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And when he was come forth upon the land, there met him a certain man out of the city, who had demons for a long time, and ware no clothes, and abode not in any house, but in the tombs. | И҆зше́дшꙋ же є҆мꙋ̀ на зе́млю, срѣ́те є҆го̀ мꙋ́жъ нѣ́кїй ѿ гра́да, и҆́же и҆мѧ́ше бѣ́сы ѿ лѣ́тъ мно́гихъ, и҆ въ ри́зꙋ не ѡ҆блача́шесѧ, и҆ во хра́мѣ не живѧ́ше, но во гробѣ́хъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And when he saw Jesus, he also cried out, and fell down before him, and with a loud voice said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, thou Son of the Most High God? I beseech thee, torment me not. | Оу҆зрѣ́въ же і҆и҃са и҆ возопи́въ, припадѐ къ немꙋ̀, и҆ гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ речѐ: что̀ мнѣ̀ и҆ тебѣ̀, і҆и҃се сн҃е бг҃а вы́шнѧгѡ; молю́сѧ тѝ, не мꙋ́чи менѐ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| For he was commanding the unclean spirit to come out from the man. For oftentimes it had seized him: and he was kept under guard, and bound with chains and fetters; and breaking the bands asunder, he was driven of the demon into the deserts. | Повелѣ́ бо дꙋ́хови нечи́стомꙋ и҆зы́ти ѿ человѣ́ка: ѿ мно́гихъ бо лѣ́тъ восхища́ше є҆го̀: и҆ вѧ́захꙋ є҆го̀ оу҆́зы (желѣ̑зны) и҆ пꙋ̑ты, стрегꙋ́ще є҆го̀: и҆ растерза́ѧ оу҆́зы, гони́мь быва́ше бѣ́сомъ сквозѣ̀ пꙋсты̑ни. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And Jesus asked him, saying, What is thy name? And he said, Legion; for many demons were entered into him. | Вопроси́ же є҆го̀ і҆и҃съ, глаго́лѧ: что̀ тѝ є҆́сть и҆́мѧ; Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: легеѡ́нъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ бѣ́си мно́зи внидо́ша во́нь. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And they entreated him that he would not command them to depart into the abyss. | И҆ молѧ́хꙋ є҆го̀, да не повели́тъ и҆̀мъ въ бе́зднꙋ и҆тѝ. |
|
32
|
32
|
| Now there was there a herd of many swine feeding on the mountain: and they entreated him that he would give them leave to enter into them. And he gave them leave. | Бѣ́ же тꙋ̀ ста́до свине́й мно́го пасо́мо въ горѣ̀: и҆ молѧ́хꙋ є҆го̀, да повели́тъ и҆̀мъ въ ты̑ вни́ти. И҆ повелѣ̀ и҆̀мъ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And the demons came out from the man, and entered into the swine: and the herd rushed down the steep into the lake, and were drowned. | И҆зше́дше же бѣ́си ѿ человѣ́ка, внидо́ша во свинїѧ̑: и҆ оу҆стреми́сѧ ста́до по бре́гꙋ въ є҆́зеро, и҆ и҆стопѐ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And when they that fed them saw what had come to pass, they fled, and told it in the city and in the country. | Ви́дѣвше же пасꙋ́щїи бы́вшее, бѣжа́ша, и҆ возвѣсти́ша во гра́дѣ и҆ въ се́лѣхъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And they went out to see what had come to pass; and they came to Jesus, and found the man, from whom the demons were gone out, sitting, clothed and in his right mind, at the feet of Jesus: and they were afraid. | И҆зыдо́ша же ви́дѣти бы́вшее: и҆ прїидо́ша ко і҆и҃сови и҆ ѡ҆брѣто́ша человѣ́ка сѣдѧ́ща, и҆з̾ негѡ́же бѣ́си и҆зыдо́ша, ѡ҆болче́на и҆ смы́слѧща, при ногꙋ̀ і҆и҃сѡвꙋ: и҆ оу҆боѧ́шасѧ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And they also that saw it told them how he that was possessed with demons was made whole. | Возвѣсти́ша же и҆̀мъ ви́дѣвшїи, ка́кѡ спасе́сѧ бѣснова́выйсѧ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And all the people of the country of the Gadarenes round about asked him to depart from them; for they were holden with great fear: and he entered into the boat, and returned. | И҆ молѝ є҆го̀ ве́сь наро́дъ страны̀ гадари́нскїѧ ѿитѝ ѿ ни́хъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ стра́хомъ ве́лїимъ ѡ҆держи́ми бѣ́хꙋ. Ѻ҆́нъ же влѣ́зъ въ кора́бль, возврати́сѧ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| But the man from whom the demons were gone out prayed him that he might be with him: but Jesus sent him away, saying, | Молѧ́шесѧ же є҆мꙋ̀ мꙋ́жъ, и҆з̾ негѡ́же и҆зыдо́ша бѣ́си, да бы̀ съ ни́мъ бы́лъ. Ѿпꙋсти́ же є҆го̀ і҆и҃съ, глаго́лѧ: |
|
39
|
39
|
| Return to thy house, and declare how great things God hath done for thee. And he went his way, publishing throughout the whole city how great things Jesus had done for him. | возврати́сѧ въ до́мъ тво́й и҆ повѣ́дай, є҆ли̑ка тѝ сотворѝ бг҃ъ. И҆ и҆́де, по всемꙋ̀ гра́дꙋ проповѣ́даѧ, є҆ли́ка сотворѝ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And it came to pass when Jesus returned, the multitude welcomed him; for they were all waiting for him. |
|
|
41
|
41
|
| And behold, there came a man named Jairus, and he was a ruler of the synagogue: and he fell down at Jesus’ feet, and besought him to come into his house; | И҆ сѐ прїи́де мꙋ́жъ, є҆мꙋ́же и҆́мѧ і҆аі́ръ, и҆ то́й кнѧ́зь со́нмищꙋ бѣ̀. И҆ па́дъ при ногꙋ̀ і҆и҃сѡвꙋ, молѧ́ше є҆го̀ вни́ти въ до́мъ сво́й: |
|
42
|
42
|
| for he had an only daughter, about twelve years of age, and she was dying. But as he went the multitudes thronged him. | ꙗ҆́кѡ дщѝ є҆диноро́дна бѣ̀ є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ лѣ́тъ двоюна́десѧте, и҆ та̀ оу҆мира́ше. Є҆гда́ же и҆дѧ́ше, наро́ди оу҆гнѣта́хꙋ є҆го̀. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And a woman having an issue of blood twelve years, who had spent all her living upon physicians, and could not be healed of any, | И҆ жена̀ сꙋ́щи въ точе́нїи кро́ве ѿ двоюна́десѧте лѣ̑тꙋ, ꙗ҆́же врачє́мъ и҆зда́вши всѐ и҆мѣ́нїе, (и҆) не возмо́же ни ѿ є҆ди́нагѡ и҆сцѣлѣ́ти: |
|
44
|
44
|
| came behind him, and touched the border of his garment: and immediately the issue of her blood staunched. | (и҆) пристꙋ́пльши созадѝ, коснꙋ́сѧ кра́ѧ ри́зъ є҆гѡ̀: и҆ а҆́бїе ста̀ то́къ кро́ве є҆ѧ̀. |
|
45
|
45
|
| And Jesus said, Who is it that touched me? And when all denied, Peter said, and they that were with him, Master, the multitudes press thee and crush thee, and sayest thou, Who is it that touched me? | И҆ речѐ і҆и҃съ: кто̀ є҆́сть коснꙋ́выйсѧ мнѣ̀; Ѿмета́ющымсѧ же всѣ̑мъ, речѐ пе́тръ и҆ и҆̀же съ ни́мъ: наста́вниче, наро́ди ѡ҆держа́тъ тѧ̀ и҆ гнѣтꙋ́тъ, и҆ глаго́леши: кто̀ є҆́сть коснꙋ́выйсѧ мнѣ̀; |
|
46
|
46
|
| But Jesus said, Someone did touch me; for I perceived that power had gone forth from me. | І҆и҃съ же речѐ: прикоснꙋ́сѧ мнѣ̀ нѣ́кто: а҆́зъ бо чꙋ́хъ си́лꙋ и҆зше́дшꙋю и҆з̾ менє̀. |
|
47
|
47
|
| And when the woman saw that she was not hidden, she came trembling, and falling down before him declared unto him in the presence of all the people for what cause she touched him, and how she was healed immediately. | Ви́дѣвши же жена̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ не оу҆таи́сѧ, трепе́щꙋщи прїи́де, и҆ па́дши пред̾ ни́мъ, є҆ѧ́же ра́ди вины̀ прикоснꙋ́сѧ є҆мꙋ̀, повѣ́да є҆мꙋ̀ пред̾ всѣ́ми людьмѝ, и҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆сцѣлѣ̀ а҆́бїе. |
|
48
|
48
|
| And he said unto her, Daughter, be of good cheer: thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆́й: дерза́й дщѝ, вѣ́ра твоѧ̀ сп҃се́ тѧ: и҆дѝ въ ми́рѣ. |
|
49
|
49
|
| While he yet spake, there cometh one from the ruler of the synagogue’s house, saying to him, Thy daughter is dead; trouble not the Teacher. | Є҆щѐ є҆мꙋ̀ глаго́лющꙋ, прїи́де нѣ́кїй ѿ а҆рхїсѷнагѡ́га, глаго́лѧ є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ оу҆́мре дщѝ твоѧ̀: не дви́жи оу҆чи́телѧ. |
|
50
|
50
|
| But Jesus hearing it, answered him, saying, Fear not: only believe, and she shall be made whole. | І҆и҃съ же слы́шавъ ѿвѣща̀ є҆мꙋ̀, глаго́лѧ: не бо́йсѧ, то́кмѡ вѣ́рꙋй, и҆ сп҃се́на бꙋ́детъ. |
|
51
|
51
|
| And when he came to the house, he suffered no man to enter in, save Peter, and John, and James, and the father of the maiden and her mother. | Прише́дъ же въ до́мъ, не ѡ҆ста́ви ни є҆ди́нагѡ вни́ти, то́кмѡ петра̀ и҆ і҆ѡа́нна и҆ і҆а́кѡва, и҆ ѻ҆тца̀ ѻ҆трокови́цы, и҆ ма́тере. |
|
52
|
52
|
| And all were weeping, and bewailing her: but he said, Weep not; she is not dead, but sleepeth. | Пла́кахꙋсѧ же всѝ и҆ рыда́хꙋ є҆ѧ̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: не пла́читесѧ: не оу҆́мре (бо), но спи́тъ. |
|
53
|
53
|
| And they laughed him to scorn, knowing that she was dead. | И҆ рꙋга́хꙋсѧ є҆мꙋ̀, вѣ́дѧще, ꙗ҆́кѡ оу҆́мре. |
|
54
|
54
|
| But he, putting them all out and taking her by the hand, called, saying, Maiden, arise. | Ѻ҆́нъ же и҆згна́въ во́нъ всѣ́хъ, и҆ є҆́мъ за рꙋ́кꙋ є҆ѧ̀, возгласѝ, глаго́лѧ: ѻ҆трокови́це, воста́ни. |
|
55
|
55
|
| And her spirit returned, and she rose up immediately: and he commanded that something be given her to eat. | И҆ возврати́сѧ дꙋ́хъ є҆ѧ̀, и҆ воскре́се а҆́бїе: и҆ повелѣ̀ да́ти є҆́й ꙗ҆́сти. |
|
56
|
56
|
| And her parents were amazed: but he charged them to tell no man what had been done. | И҆ диви́стасѧ роди́тєлѧ є҆ѧ̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же повелѣ̀ и҆́ма никомꙋ́же повѣ́дати бы́вшагѡ. |
|
Chapter 9
|
Глава́ ѳ҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he called the twelve together, and gave them power and authority over all demons, and to cure diseases. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃.) Созва́въ же ѻ҆бана́десѧте, дадѐ и҆̀мъ си́лꙋ и҆ вла́сть на всѧ̑ бѣ́сы, и҆ недꙋ́ги цѣли́ти: |
|
2
|
2
|
| And he sent them forth to preach the kingdom of God, and to heal the sick. | и҆ посла̀ и҆̀хъ проповѣ́дати црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе и҆ и҆сцѣли́ти болѧ́щыѧ. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he said unto them, Take nothing for your journey, neither staves, nor wallet, nor bread, nor money; neither have two coats apiece. | И҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: ничесѡ́же возми́те на пꙋ́ть: ни жезла̀, ни пи́ры, ни хлѣ́ба, ни сребра̀, ни по двѣма̀ ри́зама и҆мѣ́ти: |
|
4
|
4
|
| And into whatsoever house ye enter, there abide, and thence depart. | и҆ въ ѻ҆́ньже до́мъ вни́дете, тꙋ̀ пребыва́йте и҆ ѿтꙋ́дꙋ и҆сходи́те: |
|
5
|
5
|
| And as many as will not receive you, when ye depart from that city, shake off even the dust from your feet for a testimony against them. | и҆ є҆ли́цы а҆́ще не прїе́млютъ ва́съ, и҆сходѧ́ще ѿ гра́да тогѡ̀, и҆ пра́хъ ѿ но́гъ ва́шихъ ѿтрѧси́те, во свидѣ́телство на нѧ̀. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And they departed, and went throughout the villages, preaching the gospel, and healing everywhere. | И҆сходѧ́ще же прохожда́хꙋ сквозѣ̀ вє́си, благовѣствꙋ́юще и҆ и҆сцѣлѧ́юще всю́дꙋ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| Now Herod the tetrarch heard of all that was done by him: and he was much perplexed, because that it was said by some, that John was risen from the dead; | (Заⷱ҇ м҃а҃.) Слы́ша же и҆́рѡдъ четвертовла́стникъ быва̑ющаѧ ѿ негѡ̀ всѧ̑ и҆ недоꙋмѣва́шесѧ: занѐ глаго́лемо бѣ̀ ѿ нѣ́кихъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ і҆ѡа́ннъ воста̀ ѿ ме́ртвыхъ: |
|
8
|
8
|
| and by some, that Elijah had appeared; and by others, that one of the old prophets was risen again. | ѿ и҆нѣ́хъ же, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆лїа̀ ꙗ҆ви́сѧ: ѿ дрꙋги́хъ же, ꙗ҆́кѡ прⷪ҇ро́къ є҆ди́нъ ѿ дре́внихъ воскре́се. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And Herod said, John I beheaded: but who is this, about whom I hear such things? And he sought to see him. | И҆ речѐ и҆́рѡдъ: і҆ѡа́нна а҆́зъ оу҆сѣ́кнꙋхъ: кто́ же є҆́сть се́й, ѡ҆ не́мже а҆́зъ слы́шꙋ такова́ѧ; И҆ и҆ска́ше ви́дѣти є҆го̀. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And the apostles, when they were returned, declared unto him what things they had done. And he took them, and withdrew apart to a desert place of a city called Bethsaida. | И҆ возвра́щшесѧ а҆пⷭ҇ли повѣ́даша є҆мꙋ̀, є҆ли́ка сотвори́ша: и҆ пои́мъ и҆̀хъ, ѿи́де є҆ди́нъ [ѡ҆со́бь] на мѣ́сто пꙋ́сто гра́да, нарица́емагѡ виѳсаі́да. |
|
11
|
11
|
| But the multitudes perceiving it followed him: and he received them, and spake to them of the kingdom of God, and them that had need of healing he cured. | Наро́ди же разꙋмѣ́вше, по не́мъ и҆до́ша: и҆ прїе́мъ и҆̀хъ, гл҃аше и҆̀мъ ѡ҆ црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи и҆ тре́бꙋющыѧ и҆сцѣле́нїѧ цѣлѧ́ше. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And the day began to wear away; and the twelve came, and said unto him, Send the multitude away, that they may go into the villages and the country round about, and lodge, and get provisions: for we are here in a desert place. | Де́нь же нача́тъ прекланѧ́тисѧ. (Заⷱ҇ м҃в҃.) Пристꙋ́пльше же ѻ҆бана́десѧте реко́ша є҆мꙋ̀: ѿпꙋстѝ наро́дъ, да ше́дше во ѡ҆крє́стныѧ вє́си и҆ се́ла вита́ютъ и҆ ѡ҆брѧ́щꙋтъ бра́шно: ꙗ҆́кѡ здѣ̀ въ пꙋ́стѣ мѣ́стѣ є҆смы̀. |
|
13
|
13
|
| But he said unto them, Give ye them to eat. And they said, We have no more than five loaves and two fish; except we should go and buy food for all this people. | Рече́ же къ ни̑мъ: дади́те и҆̀мъ вы̀ ꙗ҆́сти. Ѻ҆ни́ же рѣ́ша: нѣ́сть оу҆ на́съ вѧ́щше, то́кмѡ пѧ́ть хлѣ̑бъ и҆ ры̑бѣ двѣ̀, а҆́ще оу҆̀бо не ше́дше мы̀ кꙋ́пимъ во всѧ̑ лю́ди сїѧ̑ бра̑шна. |
|
14
|
14
|
| For they were about five thousand men. And he said unto his disciples, Make them sit down in companies by fifties. | Бѣ́хꙋ бо мꙋже́й ꙗ҆́кѡ пѧ́ть ты́сѧщъ. Рече́ же ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: посади́те и҆̀хъ на кꙋ̑пы по пѧти́десѧтъ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And they did so, and made them all sit down. | И҆ сотвори́ша та́кѡ и҆ посади́ша и҆̀хъ всѧ̑. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And he took the five loaves and the two fish, and looking up to heaven, he blessed them, and brake; and gave to the disciples to set before the multitude. | Прїи́мъ же пѧ́ть хлѣ̑бъ и҆ ѻ҆́бѣ ры̑бѣ, воззрѣ́въ на не́бо, блгⷭ҇вѝ и҆̀хъ, и҆ преломѝ, и҆ даѧ́ше оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ предложи́ти наро́дꙋ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And they ate, and were all filled: and there was taken up that which remained over to them of broken pieces, twelve baskets. | И҆ ꙗ҆до́ша и҆ насы́тишасѧ всѝ: и҆ взѧ́ша и҆збы́вшыѧ и҆̀мъ оу҆крꙋ́хи ко́шѧ двана́десѧте. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And it came to pass, as he was praying apart, the disciples were with him: and he asked them, saying, Who do the multitudes say that I am? | (Заⷱ҇ м҃г҃.) И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ молѧ́шесѧ є҆ди́нъ, съ ни́мъ бѣ́хꙋ оу҆чн҃цы̀: и҆ вопросѝ и҆̀хъ, гл҃ѧ: кого́ мѧ глаго́лютъ наро́ди бы́ти; |
|
19
|
19
|
| And they answered and said, John the Baptist; but others say, Elijah; and others, that one of the old prophets is risen again. | Ѻ҆ни́ же ѿвѣща́вше рѣ́ша: і҆ѡа́нна крⷭ҇ти́телѧ: и҆ні́и же и҆лїю̀: дрꙋзі́и же, ꙗ҆́кѡ прⷪ҇ро́къ нѣ́кїй ѿ дре́внихъ воскре́се. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And he said unto them, But who say ye that I am? And Peter answered and said, The Christ of God. | Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: вы́ же кого́ мѧ глаго́лете бы́ти; Ѿвѣща́въ же пе́тръ речѐ: хрⷭ҇та̀ бж҃їѧ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| But he charged them, and commanded them to tell this to no man; | Ѻ҆́нъ же запре́щь и҆̀мъ, повелѣ̀ никомꙋ́же глаго́лати сегѡ̀, |
|
22
|
22
|
| saying, The Son of man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders and chief priests and scribes, and be killed, and the third day be raised up. | ре́къ, ꙗ҆́кѡ подоба́етъ сн҃ꙋ чл҃вѣ́ческомꙋ мно́гѡ пострада́ти, и҆ и҆скꙋше́нꙋ [ѿве́рженꙋ] бы́ти ѿ ста́рєцъ и҆ а҆рхїерє́й и҆ кни̑жникъ, и҆ оу҆бїе́нꙋ бы́ти, и҆ въ тре́тїй де́нь воста́ти. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And he said unto all, If any man would come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross, and follow me. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃д҃.) Гл҃аше же ко всѣ̑мъ: а҆́ще кто̀ хо́щетъ по мнѣ̀ и҆тѝ, да ѿве́ржетсѧ себє̀, и҆ во́зметъ кре́стъ сво́й, и҆ послѣ́дꙋетъ мѝ. |
|
24
|
24
|
| For whosoever would save his life shall lose it; but whosoever shall lose his life for my sake, the same shall save it. | И҆́же бо а҆́ще хо́щетъ дꙋ́шꙋ свою̀ спⷭ҇тѝ, погꙋ́битъ ю҆̀: а҆ и҆́же погꙋ́битъ дꙋ́шꙋ свою̀ менє̀ ра́ди, се́й сп҃се́тъ ю҆̀. |
|
25
|
25
|
| For what is a man profited, if he gain the whole world, and lose or forfeit his own self? | Что́ бо по́льзы и҆́мать человѣ́къ, прїѡбрѣ́тъ мі́ръ ве́сь, себе́ же погꙋби́въ и҆лѝ ѿтщети́въ; |
|
26
|
26
|
| For whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he cometh in his own glory, and the glory of the Father, and of the holy angels. | И҆́же бо а҆́ще постыди́тсѧ менє̀ и҆ мои́хъ слове́съ, сегѡ̀ сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй постыди́тсѧ, є҆гда̀ прїи́детъ во сла́вѣ свое́й и҆ ѻ҆́ч҃ей и҆ ст҃ы́хъ а҆́гг҃лъ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| But I tell you of a truth, There are some of them that stand here, who shall in no wise taste of death, till they see the kingdom of God. | Глаго́лю же ва́мъ вои́стиннꙋ: сꙋ́ть нѣ́цыи ѿ здѣ̀ стоѧ́щихъ, и҆̀же не и҆́мꙋтъ вкꙋси́ти сме́рти, до́ндеже ви́дѧтъ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And it came to pass about eight days after these sayings, that he took with him Peter and John and James, and went up into the mountain to pray. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃е҃.) Бы́сть же по словесѣ́хъ си́хъ ꙗ҆́кѡ дні́й ѻ҆́смь, и҆ пое́мъ петра̀ и҆ і҆ѡа́нна и҆ і҆а́кѡва, взы́де на горꙋ̀ помоли́тисѧ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And as he was praying, the fashion of his countenance was altered, and his raiment became white and dazzling. | И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ молѧ́шесѧ, видѣ́нїе лица̀ є҆гѡ̀ и҆́но, и҆ ѡ҆дѣѧ́нїе є҆гѡ̀ бѣло̀ блиста́ѧсѧ. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And behold, there talked with him two men, who were Moses and Elijah; | И҆ сѐ мꙋ̑жа два̀ съ ни́мъ глагѡ́люща, ꙗ҆̀же бѣ́ста мѡѷсе́й и҆ и҆лїа̀, |
|
31
|
31
|
| who appeared in glory, and spake of his decease which he was about to accomplish at Jerusalem. | ꙗ҆́вльшасѧ во сла́вѣ, глаго́ласта же и҆схо́дъ є҆гѡ̀, є҆го́же хотѧ́ше сконча́ти во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ. |
|
32
|
32
|
| Now Peter and they that were with him were heavy with sleep: but when they were fully awake, they saw his glory, and the two men that stood with him. | Пе́тръ же и҆ сꙋ́щїи съ ни́мъ бѧ́хꙋ ѡ҆тѧгче́ни сно́мъ: оу҆бꙋ́ждшесѧ же ви́дѣша сла́вꙋ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ ѻ҆́ба мꙋ̑жа стоѧ̑ща съ ни́мъ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And it came to pass, as they were parting from him, Peter said unto Jesus, Master, it is good for us to be here: and let us make three tabernacles; one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elijah: not knowing what he said. | И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ разлꙋчи́стасѧ ѿ негѡ̀, речѐ пе́тръ ко і҆и҃сꙋ: наста́вниче, добро̀ є҆́сть на́мъ здѣ̀ бы́ти: и҆ сотвори́мъ сѣ̑ни трѝ, є҆ди́нꙋ тебѣ̀, и҆ є҆ди́нꙋ мѡѷсе́ови, и҆ є҆ди́нꙋ и҆лїѝ: не вѣ́дый, є҆́же глаго́лаше. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And while he said these things, there came a cloud, and overshadowed them: and they feared as they entered into the cloud. | Се́ же є҆мꙋ̀ глаго́лющꙋ, бы́сть ѡ҆́блакъ, и҆ ѡ҆сѣнѝ и҆̀хъ: оу҆боѧ́шасѧ же, вше́дше во ѡ҆́блакъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And a voice came out of the cloud, saying, This is my beloved Son: hear ye him. | И҆ гла́съ бы́сть и҆з̾ ѡ҆́блака, глаго́лѧ: се́й є҆́сть сн҃ъ мо́й возлю́бленный, тогѡ̀ послꙋ́шайте. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And when the voice came, Jesus was found alone. And they held their peace, and told no man in those days any of the things which they had seen. | И҆ є҆гда̀ бы́сть гла́съ, ѡ҆брѣ́тесѧ і҆и҃съ є҆ди́нъ. И҆ ті́и оу҆молча́ша, и҆ никомꙋ́же возвѣсти́ша въ ты̑ѧ дни̑ ничесѡ́же ѿ тѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же ви́дѣша. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And it came to pass, on the next day, when they were come down from the mountain, a great multitude met him. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃ѕ҃.) Бы́сть же въ про́чїй де́нь, сше́дшымъ и҆̀мъ съ горы̀, срѣ́те є҆го̀ наро́дъ мно́гъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And behold, a man from the multitude cried out, saying, Teacher, I beseech thee to look upon my son; for he is mine only child: | И҆ сѐ мꙋ́жъ и҆з̾ наро́да возопѝ, глаго́лѧ: оу҆чи́телю, молю́тисѧ, при́зри на сы́на моего̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆диноро́денъ мѝ є҆́сть: |
|
39
|
39
|
| and behold, a spirit taketh him, and he suddenly crieth out; and it teareth him that he foameth, and it hardly departeth from him, bruising him sorely. | и҆ сѐ дꙋ́хъ є҆́млетъ є҆го̀, и҆ внеза́пꙋ вопїе́тъ, и҆ прꙋжа́етсѧ [терза́етъ є҆го̀] съ пѣ́нами, и҆ є҆два̀ ѿхо́дитъ ѿ негѡ̀, сокрꙋша́ѧ є҆го̀: |
|
40
|
40
|
| And I besought thy disciples to cast it out; and they could not. | и҆ моли́хсѧ оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ твои̑мъ, да и҆жденꙋ́тъ є҆го̀: и҆ не возмого́ша. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And Jesus answered and said, O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be with you, and bear with you? bring thy son hither. | Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆и҃съ речѐ: ѽ, ро́де невѣ́рный и҆ развраще́нный, доко́лѣ бꙋ́дꙋ въ ва́съ и҆ терплю̀ вы̀; приведи́ (ми) сы́на твоего̀ сѣ́мѡ. |
|
42
|
42
|
| And as he was yet a coming, the demon dashed him down, and tare him grievously. But Jesus rebuked the unclean spirit, and healed the boy, and gave him back to his father. | Є҆ще́ же грѧдꙋ́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀, пове́рже є҆го̀ бѣ́съ и҆ стрѧсѐ. Запрети́ же і҆и҃съ дꙋ́хови нечи́стомꙋ, и҆ и҆сцѣлѝ ѻ҆́трока, и҆ вдадѐ є҆го̀ ѻ҆тцꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And they were all astonished at the majesty of God. But while all were marveling at all the things which Jesus did, he said unto his disciples, | Дивлѧ́хꙋсѧ же всѝ ѡ҆ вели́чїи бж҃їи. (Заⷱ҇ м҃з҃.) Всѣ̑мъ же чꙋдѧ́щымсѧ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же творѧ́ше і҆и҃съ, речѐ ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: |
|
44
|
44
|
| Let these words sink into your ears: for the Son of man shall be delivered up into the hands of men. | вложи́те вы̀ во оу҆́шы ва́ши словеса̀ сїѧ̑: сн҃ъ бо чл҃вѣ́ческїй и҆́мать преда́тисѧ въ рꙋ́цѣ человѣ́чєстѣ. |
|
45
|
45
|
| But they understood not this saying, and it was concealed from them, that they should not perceive it; and they were afraid to ask him about this saying. | Ѻ҆ни́ же не разꙋмѣ́ша глаго́ла сегѡ̀, бѣ́ бо прикрове́нъ ѿ ни́хъ, да не ѡ҆щꙋтѧ́тъ є҆гѡ̀: и҆ боѧ́хꙋсѧ вопроси́ти є҆го̀ ѡ҆ глаго́лѣ се́мъ. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And there arose a reasoning among them, which of them was the greatest. | Вни́де же помышле́нїе въ ни́хъ, кто̀ и҆́хъ вѧ́щшїй бы бы́лъ. |
|
47
|
47
|
| But when Jesus saw the reasoning of their heart, he took a little child, and set him by his side, | І҆и҃съ же вѣ́дый помышле́нїе серде́цъ и҆́хъ, прїе́мъ ѻ҆троча̀, поста́ви є҆̀ оу҆ себє̀ |
|
48
|
48
|
| and said unto them, Whosoever shall receive this little child in my name receiveth me: and whosoever shall receive me receiveth him that sent me: for he that is least among you all, the same shall be great. | и҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: и҆́же а҆́ще прїи́метъ сїѐ ѻ҆троча̀ во и҆́мѧ моѐ, менѐ прїе́млетъ: и҆ и҆́же а҆́ще менѐ прїе́млетъ, прїе́млетъ посла́вшаго мѧ̀: и҆́же бо ме́ншїй є҆́сть въ ва́съ, се́й є҆́сть вели́къ. |
|
49
|
49
|
| And John answered and said, Master, we saw one casting out demons in thy name; and we forbade him, because he followeth not with us. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃и҃.) Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆ѡа́ннъ речѐ: наста́вниче, ви́дѣхомъ нѣ́коего ѡ҆ и҆́мени твое́мъ и҆згонѧ́ща бѣ́сы: и҆ возбрани́хомъ є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ вослѣ́дъ не хо́дитъ съ на́ми. |
|
50
|
50
|
| And Jesus said unto him, Forbid him not: for he that is not against us is for us. | И҆ речѐ къ немꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: не брани́те: и҆́же бо нѣ́сть на вы̀, по ва́съ є҆́сть. |
|
51
|
51
|
| And it came to pass, when the days were well-nigh come that he should be received up, he steadfastly set his face to go to Jerusalem, | (Заⷱ҇.) Бы́сть же є҆гда̀ скончава́хꙋсѧ дні́е восхожде́нїю є҆гѡ̀, и҆ то́й оу҆твердѝ лицѐ своѐ и҆тѝ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ: |
|
52
|
52
|
| and sent messengers before his face: and they went, and entered into a village of the Samaritans, to make ready for him. | и҆ посла̀ вѣ́стники пред̾ лице́мъ свои́мъ: и҆ и҆зше́дше внидо́ша въ ве́сь самарѧ́нскꙋ, ꙗ҆́кѡ да оу҆гото́вѧтъ є҆мꙋ̀: |
|
53
|
53
|
| And they did not receive him, because his face was as though he were going to Jerusalem. | и҆ не прїѧ́ша є҆гѡ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ лицѐ є҆гѡ̀ бѣ̀ грѧдꙋ́щее во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ. |
|
54
|
54
|
| And when his disciples James and John saw this, they said, Lord, wilt thou that we bid fire to come down from heaven, and consume them, even as Elijah did? | Ви̑дѣвша же оу҆чн҃ка̑ є҆гѡ̀ і҆а́кѡвъ и҆ і҆ѡа́ннъ, рѣ́ста: гдⷭ҇и, хо́щеши ли, рече́ма, да ѻ҆́гнь сни́детъ съ небесѐ и҆ потреби́тъ и҆̀хъ, ꙗ҆́коже и҆ и҆лїа̀ сотворѝ; |
|
55
|
55
|
| But he turned, and rebuked them, and said, Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of. | Ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ же запретѝ и҆́ма, и҆ речѐ: не вѣ́ста, ко́егѡ дꙋ́ха є҆ста̀ вы̀: |
|
56
|
56
|
| For the Son of man came not to destroy men’s lives but to save them. And they went to another village. | сн҃ъ бо чл҃вѣ́ческїй не прїи́де дꙋ́шъ человѣ́ческихъ погꙋби́ти, но спⷭ҇тѝ: и҆ и҆до́ша во и҆́нꙋ ве́сь. |
|
57
|
57
|
| And it came to pass, as they went on the way, a certain man said unto him, I will follow thee whithersoever thou goest, Lord. | (Заⷱ҇ м҃ѳ҃.) Бы́сть же и҆дꙋ́щымъ и҆̀мъ по пꙋтѝ, речѐ нѣ́кїй къ немꙋ̀: и҆дꙋ̀ по тебѣ̀, а҆́може а҆́ще и҆́деши, гдⷭ҇и. |
|
58
|
58
|
| And Jesus said unto him, The foxes have holes, and the birds of the heaven have nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay his head. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: ли́си ꙗ҆́звины и҆́мꙋтъ, и҆ пти̑цы небє́сныѧ гнѣ́зда: сн҃ъ же чл҃вѣ́ческїй не и҆́мать гдѣ̀ главꙋ̀ подклони́ти. |
|
59
|
59
|
| And he said unto another, Follow me. But he said, Lord, suffer me first to go and bury my father. | Рече́ же ко дрꙋго́мꙋ: ходѝ в̾слѣ́дъ менє̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: гдⷭ҇и, повелѝ мѝ, (да) ше́дъ пре́жде погребꙋ̀ ѻ҆тца̀ моего̀. |
|
60
|
60
|
| But Jesus said unto him, Leave the dead to bury their own dead; but go thou and publish abroad the kingdom of God. | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: ѡ҆ста́ви мє́ртвыѧ погребстѝ своѧ̑ мертвецы̀: ты́ же ше́дъ возвѣща́й црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
61
|
61
|
| And another also said, I will follow thee, Lord; but first suffer me to bid farewell to them that are at my house. | Рече́ же и҆ дрꙋгі́й: и҆дꙋ̀ по тебѣ̀, гдⷭ҇и: пре́жде же повелѝ мѝ ѿвѣща́тисѧ, и҆̀же сꙋ́ть [попрости́тисѧ съ сꙋ́щими] въ домꙋ̀ мое́мъ. |
|
62
|
62
|
| But Jesus said unto him, No man, having put his hand to the plow, and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God. | Рече́ же къ немꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: никто́же возло́жь рꙋ́кꙋ свою̀ на ра́ло и҆ зрѧ̀ вспѧ́ть, оу҆пра́вленъ є҆́сть въ црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи. |
|
Chapter 10
|
Глава́ і҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now after these things the Lord appointed seventy others also, and sent them two and two before his face into every city and place, whither he himself was about to come. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃.) По си́хъ же ꙗ҆вѝ гдⷭ҇ь и҆ и҆нѣ́хъ се́дмьдесѧтъ, и҆ посла̀ и҆̀хъ по двѣма̀ пред̾ лице́мъ свои́мъ во всѧ́къ гра́дъ и҆ мѣ́сто, а҆́може хотѧ́ше са́мъ и҆тѝ: |
|
2
|
2
|
| Therefore said he unto them, The harvest indeed is plenteous, but the laborers are few: pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that he send forth laborers into his harvest. | гл҃аше же къ ни̑мъ: жа́тва оу҆́бѡ мно́га, дѣ́лателей же ма́лѡ: моли́тесѧ оу҆̀бо гдⷭ҇и́нꙋ жа́твѣ, да и҆зведе́тъ дѣ́латєли на жа́твꙋ свою̀. |
|
3
|
3
|
| Go your ways; behold, I send you forth as lambs in the midst of wolves. | И҆ди́те: сѐ а҆́зъ посыла́ю вы̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́гнцы посредѣ̀ волкѡ́въ. |
|
4
|
4
|
| Carry no purse, no wallet, nor shoes; and salute no man on the way. | Не носи́те влага́лища, ни пи́ры, ни сапѡ́гъ и҆ ни кого́же на пꙋтѝ цѣлꙋ́йте. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And into whatsoever house ye enter, first say, Peace be to this house. | Во́ньже а҆́ще до́мъ вни́дете, пе́рвѣе глаго́лите: ми́ръ до́мꙋ семꙋ̀: |
|
6
|
6
|
| And if a son of peace be there, your peace shall rest upon him: but if not, it shall turn to you again. | и҆ а҆́ще оу҆́бѡ бꙋ́детъ тꙋ̀ сы́нъ ми́ра, почі́етъ на не́мъ ми́ръ ва́шъ: а҆́ще ли же нѝ, къ ва́мъ возврати́тсѧ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And in that same house remain, eating and drinking such things as they give: for the laborer is worthy of his hire. Go not from house to house. | Въ то́мъ же домꙋ̀ пребыва́йте, ꙗ҆дꙋ́ще и҆ пїю́ще, ꙗ҆́же сꙋ́ть оу҆ ни́хъ: досто́инъ бо є҆́сть дѣ́латель мзды̀ своеѧ̀: не преходи́те и҆з̾ до́мꙋ въ до́мъ. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you, eat such things as are set before you: | И҆ во́ньже а҆́ще гра́дъ вхо́дите, и҆ прїе́млютъ вы̀, ꙗ҆ди́те предлага́ємаѧ ва́мъ: |
|
9
|
9
|
| and heal the sick that are therein, and say unto them, The kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. | и҆ и҆сцѣли́те недꙋ̑жныѧ, и҆̀же сꙋ́ть въ не́мъ, и҆ глаго́лите и҆̀мъ: прибли́жисѧ на вы̀ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
10
|
10
|
| But into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you not, go out into the streets thereof and say, | И҆ во́ньже а҆́ще гра́дъ вхо́дите, и҆ не прїе́млютъ ва́съ, и҆зше́дше на распꙋ̑тїѧ є҆гѡ̀, рцы́те: |
|
11
|
11
|
| Even the dust from your city, that cleaveth to us, we wipe off against you: nevertheless know this, that the kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. | и҆ пра́хъ прилѣ́пшїй на́мъ ѿ гра́да ва́шегѡ, ѿтрѧса́емъ ва́мъ. Ѻ҆ба́че сїѐ вѣ́дите, ꙗ҆́кѡ прибли́жисѧ на вы̀ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
12
|
12
|
| I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom, than for that city. | Глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ содо́млѧнѡмъ въ де́нь то́й ѿра́днѣе бꙋ́детъ, не́же гра́дꙋ томꙋ̀. |
|
13
|
13
|
| Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works had been done in Tyre and Sidon, which were done in you, they would have repented long ago, sitting in sackcloth and ashes. | Го́ре тебѣ̀, хоразі́не, го́ре тебѣ̀, виѳсаі́до: ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́ще въ тѵ́рѣ и҆ сїдѡ́нѣ бы́ша си̑лы бы́ли бы́вшыѧ въ ва́ю, дре́вле оу҆́бѡ во вре́тищи и҆ пе́пелѣ сѣдѧ́ще покаѧ́лисѧ бы́ша: |
|
14
|
14
|
| But it shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon in the judgment, than for you. | ѻ҆ба́че тѵ́рꙋ и҆ сїдѡ́нꙋ ѿра́днѣе бꙋ́детъ на сꙋдѣ̀, не́же ва́ма. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And thou, Capernaum, who art exalted unto heaven, shalt be brought down unto Hades. | И҆ ты̀, капернаꙋ́ме, и҆́же до небе́съ вознесы́йсѧ, до а҆́да низведе́шисѧ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| He that heareth you heareth me; and he that rejecteth you rejecteth me; and he that rejecteth me rejecteth him that sent me. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃а҃.) Слꙋ́шаѧй ва́съ, менє̀ слꙋ́шаетъ: и҆ ѿмета́ѧйсѧ ва́съ, менє̀ ѿмета́етсѧ: ѿмета́ѧйсѧ же менє̀, ѿмета́етсѧ посла́вшагѡ мѧ̀. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And the seventy returned with joy, saying, Lord, even the demons are subject unto us in thy name. | Возврати́шасѧ же се́дмьдесѧтъ съ ра́достїю, глаго́люще: гдⷭ҇и, и҆ бѣ́си повинꙋ́ютсѧ на́мъ ѡ҆ и҆́мени твое́мъ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And he said unto them, I beheld Satan fallen as lightning from heaven. | Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: ви́дѣхъ сатанꙋ̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ мо́лнїю съ небесѐ спа́дша. |
|
19
|
19
|
| Behold, I give you authority to tread upon serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and nothing shall in any wise hurt you. |
|
|
20
|
20
|
| Nevertheless in this rejoice not, that the spirits are subject unto you; but rejoice that your names are written in heaven. | Ѻ҆ба́че ѡ҆ се́мъ не ра́дꙋйтесѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ дꙋ́си ва́мъ повинꙋ́ютсѧ: ра́дꙋйтесѧ же, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆мена̀ ва̑ша напи̑сана сꙋ́ть на нб҃сѣ́хъ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| In that same hour Jesus rejoiced in the Spirit, and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, that thou didst hide these things from the wise and understanding, and didst reveal them unto babes: yea, Father; for so it was well-pleasing in thy sight. | Въ то́й ча́съ возра́довасѧ дꙋ́хомъ і҆и҃съ и҆ речѐ: и҆сповѣ́даютисѧ, ѻ҆́ч҃е, гдⷭ҇и нб҃сѐ и҆ землѝ, ꙗ҆́кѡ оу҆таи́лъ є҆сѝ сїѧ̑ ѿ премꙋ́дрыхъ и҆ разꙋ́мныхъ, и҆ ѿкры́лъ є҆сѝ та̑ младе́нцємъ: є҆́й, ѻ҆́ч҃е, ꙗ҆́кѡ та́кѡ бы́сть бл҃говоле́нїе пред̾ тобо́ю. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And turning to the disciples, he said, All things have been delivered unto me of my Father: and no one knoweth who the Son is, save the Father; and who the Father is, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son willeth to reveal him. | И҆̀ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ, речѐ: всѧ̑ мнѣ̀ предана̑ бы́ша ѿ ѻ҆ц҃а̀ моегѡ̀: и҆ никто́же вѣ́сть, кто̀ є҆́сть сн҃ъ, то́кмѡ ѻ҆ц҃ъ: и҆ кто̀ є҆́сть ѻ҆ц҃ъ, то́кмѡ сн҃ъ, и҆ є҆мꙋ́же а҆́ще хо́щетъ сн҃ъ ѿкры́ти. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And turning to the disciples, he said privately, Blessed are the eyes which see the things that ye see: | (Заⷱ҇ н҃в҃.) И҆̀ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ, є҆ди́нъ [ѡ҆со́бь] речѐ: блаже́ни ѻ҆́чи ви́дѧщїи, ꙗ҆̀же ви́дите: |
|
24
|
24
|
| for I say unto you, that many prophets and kings desired to see the things which ye see, and saw them not; and to hear the things which ye hear, and heard them not. | глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ мно́зи прⷪ҇ро́цы и҆ ца́рїе восхотѣ́ша ви́дѣти, ꙗ҆̀же вы̀ ви́дите, и҆ не ви́дѣша: и҆ слы́шати, ꙗ҆̀же слы́шите, и҆ не слы́шаша. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And behold, a certain lawyer stood up, making trial of him, and saying, Teacher, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? | (Заⷱ҇ н҃г҃.) И҆ сѐ, зако́нникъ нѣ́кїй воста̀, и҆скꙋша́ѧ є҆го̀ и҆ глаго́лѧ: оу҆чи́телю, что̀ сотвори́въ, живо́тъ вѣ́чный наслѣ́дꙋю; |
|
26
|
26
|
| And he said unto him, What is written in the law? how readest thou? | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ къ немꙋ̀: въ зако́нѣ что̀ пи́сано є҆́сть; ка́кѡ чте́ши; |
|
27
|
27
|
| And he answered and said, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and thy neighbor as thyself. | Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿвѣща́въ речѐ: возлю́биши гдⷭ҇а бг҃а твоего̀ ѿ всегѡ̀ се́рдца твоегѡ̀, и҆ ѿ всеѧ̀ дꙋшѝ твоеѧ̀, и҆ все́ю крѣ́постїю твое́ю, и҆ всѣ́мъ помышле́нїемъ твои́мъ: и҆ бли́жнѧго своего̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ са́мъ себѐ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And he said unto him, Thou hast answered right: this do, and thou shalt live. | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀: пра́вѡ ѿвѣща́лъ є҆сѝ: сїѐ сотворѝ, и҆ жи́въ бꙋ́деши. |
|
29
|
29
|
| But he, desiring to justify himself, said unto Jesus, And who is my neighbor? | Ѻ҆́нъ же хотѧ̀ ѡ҆правди́тисѧ са́мъ, речѐ ко і҆и҃сꙋ: и҆ кто̀ є҆́сть бли́жнїй мо́й; |
|
30
|
30
|
| And Jesus made answer and said, A certain man was going down from Jerusalem to Jericho; and he fell among robbers, who both stripped him and beat him, and departed, leaving him half dead. | Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆и҃съ речѐ: человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй схожда́ше ѿ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ма во і҆ерїхѡ́нъ, и҆ въ разбо́йники впадѐ, и҆̀же совле́кше є҆го̀, и҆ ꙗ҆́звы возло́жше ѿидо́ша, ѡ҆ста́вльше є҆два̀ жи́ва сꙋ́ща. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And by chance a certain priest was going down that way: and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. | По слꙋ́чаю же свѧще́нникъ нѣ́кїй схожда́ше пꙋте́мъ тѣ́мъ, и҆ ви́дѣвъ є҆го̀, мимои́де. |
|
32
|
32
|
| And in like manner a Levite also, when he was at the place, came and saw him, and passed by on the other side. | Та́кожде же и҆ леѵі́тъ, бы́въ на то́мъ мѣ́стѣ, прише́дъ и҆ ви́дѣвъ, мимои́де. |
|
33
|
33
|
| But a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came where he was: and when he saw him, he was moved with compassion, | Самарѧ́нинъ же нѣ́кто грѧды́й, прїи́де над̾ него̀, и҆ ви́дѣвъ є҆го̀, милосе́рдова: |
|
34
|
34
|
| and came to him, and bound up his wounds, pouring on them oil and wine; and he set him on his own beast, and brought him to an inn, and took care of him. | и҆ пристꙋ́пль ѡ҆бвѧза̀ стрꙋ́пы є҆гѡ̀, возлива́ѧ ма́сло и҆ вїно̀: всади́въ же є҆го̀ на сво́й ско́тъ, приведѐ є҆го̀ въ гости́нницꙋ, и҆ прилѣжа̀ є҆мꙋ̀: |
|
35
|
35
|
| And on the morrow when he departed, he took out two denarii, and gave them to the host, and said unto him, Take care of him; and whatsoever thou spendest more, I, when I come back again, will repay thee. | и҆ наꙋ́трїѧ и҆зше́дъ, и҆з̾е́мъ два̀ сре́брєника, дадѐ гости́нникꙋ, и҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: прилѣжѝ є҆мꙋ̀: и҆, є҆́же а҆́ще прїиждиве́ши, а҆́зъ є҆гда̀ возвращꙋ́сѧ, возда́мъ тѝ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| Which now of these three, thinkest thou, proved neighbor unto him that fell among the robbers? | Кто̀ оу҆̀бо ѿ тѣ́хъ трїе́хъ бли́жнїй мни́ттисѧ бы́ти впа́дшемꙋ въ разбо́йники; |
|
37
|
37
|
| Then he said, He that showed mercy on him. Then Jesus said unto him, Go, and do thou likewise. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: сотвори́вый ми́лость съ ни́мъ. Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: и҆дѝ, и҆ ты̀ творѝ та́кожде. |
|
38
|
38
|
| Now it came to pass, as they went on their way, that he entered into a certain village: and a certain woman named Martha received him into her house. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃д҃.) Бы́сть же ходѧ́щымъ и҆̀мъ, и҆ са́мъ вни́де въ ве́сь нѣ́кꙋю: жена́ же нѣ́каѧ и҆́менемъ ма́рѳа прїѧ́тъ є҆го̀ въ до́мъ сво́й. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And she had a sister called Mary, who also sat at the Jesus’ feet, and heard his word. | И҆ сестра̀ є҆́й бѣ̀ нарица́емаѧ марі́а, ꙗ҆́же и҆ сѣ́дши при ногꙋ̀ і҆и҃сѡвꙋ, слы́шаше сло́во є҆гѡ̀. |
|
40
|
40
|
| But Martha was cumbered about much serving; and she came up to him, and said, Lord, dost thou not care that my sister did leave me to serve alone? bid her therefore that she help me. | Ма́рѳа же мо́лвѧше ѡ҆ мно́зѣ слꙋ́жбѣ, ста́вши же речѐ: гдⷭ҇и, не бреже́ши ли, ꙗ҆́кѡ сестра̀ моѧ̀ є҆ди́нꙋ мѧ̀ ѡ҆ста́ви слꙋжи́ти; рцы̀ оу҆̀бо є҆́й, да мѝ помо́жетъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| But Jesus answered and said unto her, Martha, Martha, thou art anxious and troubled about many things: | Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆и҃съ речѐ є҆́й: ма́рѳо, ма́рѳо, пече́шисѧ, и҆ мо́лвиши ѡ҆ мно́зѣ, |
|
42
|
42
|
| but one thing is needful: and Mary hath chosen the good part, which shall not be taken away from her. | є҆ди́но же є҆́сть на потре́бꙋ: марі́а же бл҃гꙋ́ю ча́сть и҆збра̀, ꙗ҆́же не ѿи́метсѧ ѿ неѧ̀. |
|
Chapter 11
|
Глава́ а҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And it came to pass, as he was praying in a certain place, that when he ceased, one of his disciples said unto him, Lord, teach us to pray, even as John also taught his disciples. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃е҃.) И҆ бы́сть внегда̀ бы́ти є҆мꙋ̀ на мѣ́стѣ нѣ́коемъ молѧ́щꙋсѧ, (и҆) ꙗ҆́кѡ преста̀, речѐ нѣ́кїй ѿ оу҆чени̑къ є҆гѡ̀ къ немꙋ̀: гдⷭ҇и, наꙋчи́ ны моли́тисѧ, ꙗ҆́коже и҆ і҆ѡа́ннъ наꙋчѝ оу҆ченикѝ своѧ̑. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And he said unto them, When ye pray, say, Our Father who art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done, As in heaven, so on the earth. | Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: є҆гда̀ мо́литесѧ, глаго́лите: ѻ҆́ч҃е на́шъ, и҆́же на нб҃сѣ́хъ, да свѧти́тсѧ и҆́мѧ твоѐ: да прїи́детъ црⷭ҇твїе твоѐ: да бꙋ́детъ во́лѧ твоѧ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ на нб҃сѝ, и҆ на землѝ: |
|
3
|
3
|
| Give us day by day our daily bread. | хлѣ́бъ на́шъ насꙋ́щный подава́й на́мъ на всѧ́къ де́нь: |
|
4
|
4
|
| And forgive us our sins; For we ourselves also forgive everyone that is indebted to us. And bring us not into temptation, But deliver us from the evil one. | и҆ ѡ҆ста́ви на́мъ грѣхѝ на́шѧ, и҆́бо и҆ са́ми ѡ҆ставлѧ́емъ всѧ́комꙋ должникꙋ̀ на́шемꙋ: и҆ не введѝ на́съ во и҆скꙋше́нїе, но и҆зба́ви на́съ ѿ лꙋка́вагѡ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And he said unto them, Which of you shall have a friend, and shall go unto him at midnight, and say to him, Friend, lend me three loaves; | И҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: кто̀ ѿ ва́съ и҆́мать дрꙋ́га, и҆ и҆́детъ къ немꙋ̀ въ полꙋ́нощи, и҆ рече́тъ є҆мꙋ̀: дрꙋ́же, да́ждь мѝ взаи́мъ трѝ хлѣ́бы: |
|
6
|
6
|
| for a friend is come to me from a journey, and I have nothing to set before him; | поне́же дрꙋ́гъ прїи́де съ пꙋ́ти ко мнѣ̀, и҆ не и҆́мамъ чесѡ̀ предложи́ти є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
7
|
7
|
| and he from within shall answer and say, Trouble me not: the door is now shut, and my children are with me in bed; I cannot rise and give thee? | И҆ то́й и҆звнꙋ́трь ѿвѣща́въ рече́тъ: не твори́ ми трꙋды̀: оу҆жѐ двє́ри затворены̀ сꙋ́ть, и҆ дѣ́ти моѧ̑ со мно́ю на ло́жи сꙋ́ть: (и҆) не могꙋ̀ воста́въ да́ти тебѣ̀. |
|
8
|
8
|
| I say unto you, Though he will not rise and give him because he is his friend, yet because of his importunity he will arise and give him as many as he needeth. | Гл҃ю же ва́мъ: а҆́ще и҆ не да́стъ є҆мꙋ̀ воста́въ, занѐ дрꙋ́гъ є҆мꙋ̀ є҆́сть: но за без̾о́чьство є҆гѡ̀, воста́въ да́стъ є҆мꙋ̀, є҆ли̑ка тре́бꙋетъ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And I say unto you, Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃ѕ҃.) И҆ а҆́зъ ва́мъ глаго́лю: проси́те, и҆ да́стсѧ ва́мъ: и҆щи́те, и҆ ѡ҆брѧ́щете: толцы́те, и҆ ѿве́рзетсѧ ва́мъ: |
|
10
|
10
|
| For everyone that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh findeth; and to him that knocketh it shall be opened. | всѧ́къ бо просѧ́й прїе́млетъ, и҆ и҆щѧ́й ѡ҆брѣта́етъ, и҆ толкꙋ́щемꙋ ѿве́рзетсѧ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And of which of you that is a father shall his son ask a loaf, and he give him a stone? or a fish, and he for a fish give him a serpent? | Кото́рагѡ же ва́съ ѻ҆тца̀ воспро́ситъ сы́нъ хлѣ́ба, є҆да̀ ка́мень пода́стъ є҆мꙋ̀; и҆лѝ ры́бы, є҆да̀ въ ры́бы мѣ́сто ѕмїю̀ пода́стъ є҆мꙋ̀; |
|
12
|
12
|
| Or if he shall ask an egg, will he give him a scorpion? | и҆лѝ а҆́ще попро́ситъ ꙗ҆ица̀, є҆да̀ пода́стъ є҆мꙋ̀ ско́рпїю; |
|
13
|
13
|
| If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask him? | А҆́ще оу҆̀бо вы̀ ѕлѝ сꙋ́ще, оу҆мѣ́ете даѧ̑нїѧ бла̑га даѧ́ти ча́дѡмъ ва́шымъ, ко́льми па́че ѻ҆ц҃ъ, и҆́же съ нб҃сѐ, да́стъ дх҃а ст҃а́го просѧ́щымъ оу҆ негѡ̀; |
|
14
|
14
|
| And he was casting out a demon, and it was dumb. And it came to pass, when the demon was gone out, the dumb man spake; and the multitudes marveled. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃з҃.) И҆ бѣ̀ и҆згонѧ̀ бѣ́са, и҆ то́й бѣ̀ нѣ́мъ: бы́сть же бѣ́сꙋ и҆зше́дшꙋ, проглаго́ла нѣмы́й: и҆ диви́шасѧ наро́ди. |
|
15
|
15
|
| But some of them said, By Beelzebul the prince of demons casteth he out demons. | Нѣ́цыи же ѿ ни́хъ рѣ́ша: ѡ҆ веельзевꙋ́лѣ кнѧ́зи бѣсо́встѣмъ и҆зго́нитъ бѣ́сы. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And others, trying him, sought of him a sign from heaven. | Дрꙋзі́и же и҆скꙋша́юще, зна́менїѧ ѿ негѡ̀ и҆ска́хꙋ съ небесѐ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| But he, knowing their thoughts, said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself is brought to desolation; and a house divided against a house falleth. | Ѻ҆́нъ же вѣ́дый помышлє́нїѧ и҆́хъ, речѐ и҆̀мъ: всѧ́ко ца́рство само̀ въ себѣ̀ раздѣлѧ́ѧсѧ, запꙋстѣ́етъ: и҆ до́мъ на до́мъ, па́даетъ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And if Satan also is divided against himself, how shall his kingdom stand? because ye say that I cast out demons by Beelzebul. | А҆́ще же и҆ сатана̀ са́мъ въ себѣ̀ раздѣли́сѧ, ка́кѡ ста́нетъ ца́рство є҆гѡ̀, ꙗ҆́коже глаго́лете, ѡ҆ веельзевꙋ́лѣ и҆згонѧ́щѧ мѧ̀ бѣ́сы. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And if I by Beelzebul cast out demons, by whom do your sons cast them out? therefore shall they be your judges. | А҆́ще же а҆́зъ ѡ҆ веельзевꙋ́лѣ и҆згоню̀ бѣ́сы, сы́нове ва́ши ѡ҆ ко́мъ и҆зго́нѧтъ; сегѡ̀ ра́ди ті́и бꙋ́дꙋтъ ва́мъ сꙋдїи̑. |
|
20
|
20
|
| But if I by the finger of God cast out demons, then is the kingdom of God come upon you. | А҆́ще ли же ѡ҆ пе́рстѣ бж҃їи и҆згоню̀ бѣ́сы, оу҆̀бо пости́же на ва́съ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
21
|
21
|
| When the strong man fully armed guardeth his own court, his goods are in peace: | Є҆гда̀ крѣ́пкїй воѡрꙋжи́всѧ храни́тъ сво́й дво́ръ, во смире́нїи [въ ми́рѣ] сꙋ́ть и҆мѣ̑нїѧ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
22
|
22
|
| but when a stronger than he shall come upon him, and overcome him, he taketh from him his whole armor wherein he trusted, and divideth his spoils. | є҆гда́ же крѣ́плѣй є҆гѡ̀ наше́дъ побѣди́тъ є҆го̀, всѐ ѻ҆рꙋ́жїе є҆гѡ̀ во́зметъ, на не́же оу҆пова́ше, и҆ коры́сть є҆гѡ̀ раздае́тъ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| He that is not with me is against me; and he that gathereth not with me scattereth. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃и҃.) И҆́же нѣ́сть со мно́ю, на мѧ̀ є҆́сть: и҆ и҆́же не собира́етъ со мно́ю, расточа́етъ. |
|
24
|
24
|
| The unclean spirit when he is gone out of the man, passeth through waterless places, seeking rest, and finding none, he saith, I will turn back unto my house whence I came out. | Є҆гда́ (же) нечи́стый дꙋ́хъ и҆зы́детъ ѿ человѣ́ка, прехо́дитъ сквозѣ̀ безвѡ́днаѧ мѣ̑ста, и҆щѧ̀ поко́ѧ: и҆ не ѡ҆брѣта́ѧ, глаго́летъ: возвращꙋ́сѧ въ до́мъ мо́й, ѿню́дꙋже и҆зыдо́хъ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And when he is come, he findeth it swept and garnished. | И҆ прише́дъ ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ и҆̀ помете́нъ и҆ оу҆кра́шенъ: |
|
26
|
26
|
| Then goeth he, and taketh to him seven other spirits more evil than himself; and they go and dwell there: and the last state of that man becometh worse than the first. | тогда̀ и҆́детъ и҆ по́йметъ се́дмь дрꙋги́хъ дꙋхѡ́въ го́ршихъ себє̀, и҆ вше́дше живꙋ́тъ тꙋ̀: и҆ быва́ютъ послѣ̑днѧѧ человѣ́кꙋ томꙋ̀ гѡ́рша пе́рвыхъ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And it came to pass, as he said these things, a certain woman out of the multitude lifted up her voice, and said unto him, Blessed is the womb that bare thee, and the breasts which thou didst suck. | Бы́сть же є҆гда̀ глаго́лаше сїѧ̑, воздви́гши нѣ́каѧ жена̀ гла́съ ѿ наро́да, речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: блаже́но чре́во носи́вшее тѧ̀, и҆ сосца̑, ꙗ҆̀же є҆сѝ сса́лъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But he said, Yea rather, blessed are they that hear the word of God, and keep it. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: тѣ́мже оу҆̀бо блаже́ни слы́шащїи сло́во бж҃їе и҆ хранѧ́щїи є҆̀. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And when the multitudes were gathering together unto him, he began to say, This generation is evil: it seeketh after a sign; and there shall no sign be given to it but the sign of Jonah the prophet. | (Заⷱ҇ н҃ѳ҃.) Наро́дѡмъ же собира́ющымсѧ нача́тъ глаго́лати: ро́дъ се́й лꙋка́въ є҆́сть: зна́менїѧ и҆́щетъ, и҆ зна́менїе не да́стсѧ є҆мꙋ̀, то́кмѡ зна́менїе і҆ѡ́ны прⷪ҇ро́ка: |
|
30
|
30
|
| For even as Jonah became a sign unto the Ninevites, so shall also the Son of man be to this generation. | ꙗ҆́коже бо бы́сть і҆ѡ́на зна́менїе нїнеѵі́тѡмъ, та́кѡ бꙋ́детъ и҆ сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй ро́дꙋ семꙋ̀. |
|
31
|
31
|
| The queen of the south shall rise up in the judgment with the men of this generation, and shall condemn them: for she came from the ends of the earth to hear the wisdom of Solomon; and behold, something greater than Solomon is here. | Цари́ца ю҆́жскаѧ воста́нетъ на сꙋ́дъ съ мꙋ̑жи ро́да сегѡ̀, и҆ ѡ҆сꙋ́дитъ и҆̀хъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ прїи́де ѿ конє́цъ землѝ слы́шати премꙋ́дрость соломѡ́новꙋ: и҆ сѐ мно́жае соломѡ́на здѣ̀. |
|
32
|
32
|
| The men of Nineveh shall stand up in the judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: for they repented at the preaching of Jonah; and behold, something greater than Jonah is here. | Мꙋ́жїе нїнеѵі́тстїи воста́нꙋтъ на сꙋ́дъ съ ро́домъ си́мъ, и҆ ѡ҆сꙋ́дѧтъ и҆̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ покаѧ́шасѧ про́повѣдїю і҆ѡ́ниною: и҆ сѐ мно́жае і҆ѡ́ны здѣ̀. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And no man, when he hath lighted a lamp, putteth it in a cellar, neither under the bushel, but on the stand, that they which enter in may see the light. | Никто́же (оу҆́бѡ) свѣти́лника вже́гъ, въ скро́вѣ полага́етъ, ни под̾ спꙋ́домъ, но на свѣ́щницѣ, да входѧ́щїи свѣ́тъ ви́дѧтъ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| The lamp of the body is the eye: when therefore thine eye is single, thy whole body also is full of light; but when it is evil, thy body also is full of darkness. | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃.) Свѣти́лникъ тѣ́лꙋ є҆́сть ѻ҆́ко: є҆гда̀ оу҆̀бо ѻ҆́ко твоѐ про́сто бꙋ́детъ, всѐ тѣ́ло твоѐ свѣ́тло бꙋ́детъ: є҆гда́ же лꙋка́во бꙋ́детъ, и҆ тѣ́ло твоѐ те́мно: |
|
35
|
35
|
| Look therefore whether the light that is in thee be not darkness. | блюдѝ оу҆̀бо, є҆да̀ свѣ́тъ, и҆́же въ тебѣ̀, тма̀ є҆́сть. |
|
36
|
36
|
| If therefore thy whole body be full of light, having no part dark, it shall be wholly full of light, as when the lamp with its bright shining doth give thee light. | А҆́ще бо тѣ́ло твоѐ всѐ свѣ́тло, не и҆мы́й нѣ́кїѧ ча́сти те́мны, бꙋ́детъ свѣ́тло всѐ, ꙗ҆́коже є҆гда̀ свѣти́лникъ блиста́нїемъ просвѣща́етъ тѧ̀. |
|
37
|
37
|
| Now as he spake, a certain Pharisee asked him to dine with him: and he went in, and sat down to meat. | Є҆гда́ же глаго́лаше, молѧ́ше є҆го̀ фарїсе́й нѣ́кїй, да ѡ҆бѣ́дꙋетъ оу҆ негѡ̀: вше́дъ же возлежѐ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And when the Pharisee saw it, he marveled that he had not first bathed himself before dinner. | Фарїсе́й же ви́дѣвъ диви́сѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ не пре́жде крести́сѧ [не пе́рвѣе оу҆мы́сѧ] пре́жде ѡ҆бѣ́да. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And the Lord said unto him, Now ye the Pharisees cleanse the outside of the cup and of the platter; but your inward part is full of extortion and wickedness. | Рече́ же гдⷭ҇ь къ немꙋ̀: нн҃ѣ вы̀, фарїсе́є, внѣ̑шнѧѧ стклѧ́ницы и҆ блю́да ѡ҆чища́ете, внꙋ́треннее же ва́ше по́лно грабле́нїѧ є҆́сть и҆ лꙋка́вства. |
|
40
|
40
|
| Ye foolish ones, did not he that made the outside make the inside also? | Безꙋ́мнїи, не и҆́же ли сотворѝ внѣ́шнее, и҆ внꙋ́треннее сотвори́лъ є҆́сть; |
|
41
|
41
|
| But give for alms those things which are within; and behold, all things are clean unto you. | Ѻ҆ба́че ѿ сꙋ́щихъ дади́те ми́лостыню: и҆ сѐ всѧ̑ чи̑ста ва́мъ бꙋ́дꙋтъ. |
|
42
|
42
|
| But woe unto you Pharisees! for ye tithe mint and rue and every herb, and pass over justice and the love of God: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃а҃.) Но го́ре ва́мъ фарїсе́ѡмъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѡ҆десѧ́тствꙋете ѿ мѧ́твы и҆ пига́на и҆ всѧ́кагѡ ѕе́лїѧ, и҆ мимохо́дите сꙋ́дъ и҆ любо́вь бж҃їю: сїѧ̑ подоба́ше сотвори́ти, и҆ ѻ҆́нѣхъ не ѡ҆ставлѧ́ти. |
|
43
|
43
|
| Woe unto you Pharisees! for ye love the chief seats in the synagogues, and the salutations in the marketplaces. | Го́ре ва́мъ фарїсе́ѡмъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ лю́бите предсѣда̑нїѧ на со́нмищехъ и҆ цѣлова̑нїѧ на то́ржищихъ. |
|
44
|
44
|
| Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are as the tombs which appear not, and the men walking over them know it not. | Го́ре ва́мъ, кни́жницы и҆ фарїсе́є лицемѣ́ри, ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆стѐ ꙗ҆́кѡ гро́би невѣ́доми, и҆ человѣ́цы ходѧ́щїи верхꙋ̀ не вѣ́дѧтъ. |
|
45
|
45
|
| And answering, one of the lawyers saith unto him, Teacher, in saying this thou reproachest us also. | Ѿвѣща́въ же нѣ́кїй ѿ закѡ́нникъ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: оу҆чи́телю, сїѧ̑ глаго́лѧ, и҆ на́мъ досажда́еши. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And he said, Woe unto you lawyers also! for ye load men with burdens grievous to be borne, and ye yourselves touch not the burdens with one of your fingers. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: и҆ ва́мъ зако́нникѡмъ го́ре, ꙗ҆́кѡ накла́даете на человѣ́ки бремена̀ не оу҆до́бь носи́ма, и҆ са́ми є҆ди́нѣмъ персто́мъ ва́шимъ не прикаса́етесѧ бременє́мъ. |
|
47
|
47
|
| Woe unto you! for ye build the tombs of the prophets, and your fathers killed them. | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃в҃.) Го́ре ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ зи́ждете гро́бы прⷪ҇рѡ́къ, ѻ҆тцы́ же ва́ши и҆зби́ша и҆̀хъ. |
|
48
|
48
|
| So ye bear witness and consent unto the works of your fathers: for they killed them, and ye build their tombs. | Оу҆̀бо свидѣ́телствꙋете и҆ соблаговоли́те дѣлѡ́мъ ѻ҆тє́цъ ва́шихъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ ті́и оу҆́бѡ и҆зби́ша и҆̀хъ, вы́ же зи́ждете и҆́хъ гро́бы. |
|
49
|
49
|
| Therefore also said the wisdom of God, I will send unto them prophets and apostles; and some of them they shall kill and persecute; | Сегѡ̀ ра́ди и҆ премⷣрость бж҃їѧ речѐ: послю̀ въ ни́хъ [къ ни̑мъ] прⷪ҇ро́ки и҆ а҆пⷭ҇лы, и҆ ѿ ни́хъ оу҆бїю́тъ и҆ и҆зженꙋ́тъ: |
|
50
|
50
|
| that the blood of all the prophets, which was shed from the foundation of the world, may be required of this generation; | да взы́щетсѧ кро́вь всѣ́хъ прⷪ҇рѡ́къ, пролива́емаѧ ѿ сложе́нїѧ мі́ра, ѿ ро́да сегѡ̀, |
|
51
|
51
|
| from the blood of Abel unto the blood of Zechariah, who perished between the altar and the sanctuary: yea, I say unto you, it shall be required of this generation. | ѿ кро́ве а҆́велѧ да́же до кро́ве заха́рїи, поги́бшагѡ ме́ждꙋ ѻ҆лтаре́мъ и҆ хра́момъ: є҆́й, глаго́лю ва́мъ, взы́щетсѧ ѿ ро́да сегѡ̀. |
|
52
|
52
|
| Woe unto you lawyers! for ye took away the key of knowledge: ye entered not in yourselves, and them that were entering in ye hindered. | Го́ре ва́мъ зако́нникѡмъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ взѧ́сте клю́чь разꙋмѣ́нїѧ: са́ми не внидо́сте, и҆ входѧ́щымъ возбрани́сте. |
|
53
|
53
|
| And as he said these things unto them, the scribes and the Pharisees began to press upon him vehemently, and to provoke him to speak of many things; | Гл҃ющꙋ же є҆мꙋ̀ сїѧ̑ къ ни̑мъ, нача́ша кни́жницы и҆ фарїсе́є бѣ́днѣ [ѕѣлѡ̀] гнѣ́ватисѧ на́нь и҆ преста́ти [вопроша́ти] є҆го̀ ѡ҆ мно́зѣ, |
|
54
|
54
|
| laying wait for him, seeking to catch something out of his mouth, that they might accuse him. | ла́юще є҆го̀ [навѣ́тꙋюще на́нь], и҆́щꙋще оу҆лови́ти нѣ́что ѿ оу҆́стъ є҆гѡ̀, да на́нь возглаго́лютъ. |
|
Chapter 12
|
Глава́ в҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| In the mean time, when the many thousands of the multitude were gathered together, insomuch that they trod one upon another, he began to say unto his disciples first of all, Beware ye of the leaven of the Pharisees, which is hypocrisy. | Ѡ҆ ни́хже [междꙋ̀ тѣ́мъ] собра́вшымсѧ тма́мъ наро́да, ꙗ҆́кѡ попира́ти дрꙋ́гъ дрꙋ́га, нача́тъ глаго́лати оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ пе́рвѣе: внемли́те себѣ̀ ѿ ква́са фарїсе́йска, є҆́же є҆́сть лицемѣ́рїе. |
|
2
|
2
|
| But there is nothing covered up, that shall not be revealed; and hidden, that shall not be known. |
|
|
3
|
3
|
| Wherefore whatsoever ye have said in the darkness shall be heard in the light; and what ye have spoken in the ear in the inner chambers shall be proclaimed upon the housetops. | занѐ, є҆ли̑ка во тмѣ̀ рѣ́сте, во свѣ́тѣ оу҆слы́шатсѧ: и҆ є҆́же ко оу҆́хꙋ глаго́ласте во хра́мѣхъ, проповѣ́стсѧ на кро́вѣхъ. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And I say unto you my friends, Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and after that have no more that they can do. | Гл҃ю же ва́мъ дрꙋгѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: не оу҆бо́йтесѧ ѿ оу҆бива́ющихъ тѣ́ло и҆ пото́мъ не мо́гꙋщихъ ли́шше что̀ сотвори́ти: |
|
5
|
5
|
| But I will warn you whom ye shall fear: Fear him, who after he hath killed hath power to cast into hell; yea, I say unto you, Fear him. | сказꙋ́ю же ва́мъ, когѡ̀ оу҆бо́йтесѧ: оу҆бо́йтесѧ и҆мꙋ́щагѡ вла́сть по оу҆бїе́нїи воврещѝ въ де́брь ѻ҆́гненнꙋю: є҆́й, гл҃ю ва́мъ, тогѡ̀ оу҆бо́йтесѧ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| Are not five sparrows sold for two pennies? and not one of them is forgotten in the sight of God. | Не пѧ́ть ли пти́цъ цѣни́тсѧ пѣ́нѧзема двѣма̀, и҆ ни є҆ди́на ѿ ни́хъ нѣ́сть забве́на пред̾ бг҃омъ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| But the very hairs of your head are all numbered. Fear not therefore: ye are of more value than many sparrows. | Но и҆ вла́си главы̀ ва́шеѧ всѝ и҆зочте́ни сꙋ́ть. Не оу҆бо́йтесѧ оу҆̀бо: мно́зѣхъ пти́цъ оу҆́нши є҆стѐ вы̀. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And I say unto you, Everyone who shall confess me before men, him shall the Son of man also confess before the angels of God: | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃д҃.) Гл҃ю же ва́мъ: всѧ́къ, и҆́же а҆́ще и҆сповѣ́сть мѧ̀ пред̾ человѣ̑ки, и҆ сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй и҆сповѣ́сть є҆го̀ пред̾ а҆́гг҃лы бж҃їими: |
|
9
|
9
|
| but he that denieth me in the presence of men shall be denied in the presence of the angels of God. | а҆ ѿвергі́йсѧ менє̀ пред̾ человѣ́ки, ѿве́рженъ бꙋ́детъ пред̾ а҆́гг҃лы бж҃їими. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And everyone who shall speak a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but unto him that blasphemeth against the Holy Spirit it shall not be forgiven. | И҆ всѧ́къ и҆́же рече́тъ сло́во на сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческаго, ѡ҆ста́витсѧ є҆мꙋ̀: а҆ на ст҃а́го дх҃а хꙋли́вшемꙋ не ѡ҆ста́витсѧ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And when they bring you before the synagogues, and the rulers, and the authorities, be not anxious how or what ye shall answer, or what ye shall say: | Є҆гда́ же приведꙋ́тъ вы̀ на собѡ́рища и҆ вла̑сти и҆ влады́чєства, не пецы́тесѧ, ка́кѡ и҆лѝ что̀ ѿвѣща́ете, и҆лѝ что̀ рече́те: |
|
12
|
12
|
| for the Holy Spirit shall teach you in that very hour what ye ought to say. | ст҃ы́й бо дх҃ъ наꙋчи́тъ вы̀ въ то́й ча́съ, ꙗ҆̀же подоба́етъ рещѝ. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And one out of the multitude said unto him, Teacher, bid my brother divide the inheritance with me. | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃е҃.) Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ нѣ́кїй ѿ наро́да: оу҆чи́телю, рцы̀ бра́тꙋ моемꙋ̀ раздѣли́ти со мно́ю достоѧ́нїе. |
|
14
|
14
|
| But he said unto him, Man, who made me a judge or a divider over you? | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: человѣ́че, кто̀ мѧ̀ поста́ви сꙋдїю̀ и҆лѝ дѣли́телѧ над̾ ва́ми; |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he said unto them, Take heed, and keep yourselves from covetousness: for a man’s life consisteth not in the abundance of the things which he possesseth. | Рече́ же къ ни̑мъ: блюди́те и҆ храни́тесѧ ѿ лихои́мства: ꙗ҆́кѡ не ѿ и҆збы́тка [внегда̀ и҆збы́точествовати] комꙋ̀ живо́тъ є҆гѡ̀ є҆́сть ѿ и҆мѣ́нїѧ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And he spake a parable unto them, saying, The ground of a certain rich man brought forth plentifully: | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃ѕ҃.) Рече́ же при́тчꙋ къ ни̑мъ, глаго́лѧ: человѣ́кꙋ нѣ́коемꙋ бога́тꙋ оу҆гобзи́сѧ ни̑ва: |
|
17
|
17
|
| and he reasoned within himself, saying, What shall I do, because I have not where to bestow my fruits? | и҆ мы́слѧше въ себѣ̀, глаго́лѧ: что̀ сотворю̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆́мамъ гдѣ̀ собра́ти плодѡ́въ мои́хъ; |
|
18
|
18
|
| And he said, This will I do: I will pull down my barns, and build greater; and there will I bestow all my fruits and my goods. | И҆ речѐ: сѐ сотворю̀: разорю̀ жи̑тницы моѧ̑, и҆ бо́лшыѧ сози́ждꙋ, и҆ соберꙋ̀ тꙋ̀ всѧ̑ жи̑та моѧ̑ и҆ блага̑ѧ моѧ̑: |
|
19
|
19
|
| And I will say to my soul, Soul, thou hast much goods laid up for many years; take thine ease, eat, drink, be merry. | и҆ рекꙋ̀ дꙋшѝ мое́й: дꙋшѐ, и҆́маши мнѡ́га бла̑га, лежа̑ща на лѣ̑та мнѡ́га: почива́й, ꙗ҆́ждь, пі́й, весели́сѧ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| But God said unto him, Thou foolish one, this night is thy soul required of thee; and the things which thou hast prepared, whose shall they be? | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ бг҃ъ: безꙋ́мне, въ сїю̀ но́щь дꙋ́шꙋ твою̀ и҆стѧ́жꙋтъ ѿ тебє̀: а҆ ꙗ҆̀же оу҆гото́валъ є҆сѝ, комꙋ̀ бꙋ́дꙋтъ; |
|
21
|
21
|
| So is he that layeth up treasure for himself, and is not rich toward God. | Та́кѡ собира́ѧй себѣ̀, а҆ не въ бг҃а богатѣ́ѧ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And he said unto his disciples, Therefore I say unto you, Be not anxious for your life, what ye shall eat; nor yet for the body, what ye shall put on. | Рече́ же ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои́мъ: сегѡ̀ ра́ди глаго́лю ва́мъ: не пецы́тесѧ дꙋше́ю ва́шею, что̀ ꙗ҆́сте: ни тѣ́ломъ, во что̀ ѡ҆блече́тесѧ: |
|
23
|
23
|
| Life is more than food, and the body than raiment. | дꙋша̀ бо́лши є҆́сть пи́щи, и҆ тѣ́ло ѻ҆де́жды. |
|
24
|
24
|
| Consider the ravens, that they sow not, neither reap; which have no store-chamber nor barn; and God feedeth them: of how much more value are ye than the birds! | Смотри́те вра̑нъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ не сѣ́ютъ, ни жнꙋ́тъ: и҆̀мже нѣ́сть сокро́вища, ни жи́тницы, и҆ бг҃ъ пита́етъ и҆̀хъ: ко́льми па́че вы̀ є҆стѐ лꙋ́чши пти́цъ; |
|
25
|
25
|
| And which of you by being anxious can add unto the measure of his life one cubit? | Кто́ же ѿ ва́съ пекі́йсѧ мо́жетъ приложи́ти во́зрастꙋ своемꙋ̀ ла́коть є҆ди́нъ; |
|
26
|
26
|
| If then ye are not able to do even that which is least, why are ye anxious concerning the rest? | А҆́ще оу҆̀бо ни ма́ла чесѡ̀ мо́жете, что̀ ѡ҆ про́чихъ пече́тесѧ; |
|
27
|
27
|
| Consider the lilies, how they grow: they toil not, neither do they spin; yet I say unto you, Even Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of these. | Смотри́те крі́ны, ка́кѡ растꙋ́тъ: не трꙋжда́ютсѧ, ни прѧдꙋ́тъ: глаго́лю же ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ни соломѡ́нъ во все́й сла́вѣ свое́й ѡ҆блече́сѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆ди́нъ ѿ си́хъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But if God doth so clothe the grass, which today is in the field, and tomorrow is cast into the oven; how much more shall he clothe you, O ye of little faith? | А҆́ще же травꙋ̀, на селѣ̀ дне́сь сꙋ́щꙋ и҆ оу҆́трѣ въ пе́щь вме́щемꙋ, бг҃ъ та́кѡ ѡ҆дѣва́етъ: ко́льми па́че ва́съ, маловѣ́ри; |
|
29
|
29
|
| And seek not ye what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink, neither be ye of doubtful mind. | И҆ вы̀ не и҆щи́те, что̀ ꙗ҆́сте, и҆лѝ что̀ пїе́те: и҆ не возноси́тесѧ: |
|
30
|
30
|
| For all these things do the nations of the world seek after: but your Father knoweth that ye have need of these things. | всѣ́хъ бо си́хъ ꙗ҆зы́цы мі́ра сегѡ̀ и҆́щꙋтъ: ва́шъ же ѻ҆ц҃ъ вѣ́сть, ꙗ҆́кѡ тре́бꙋете си́хъ. |
|
31
|
31
|
| Yet seek ye the kingdom of God, and all these things shall be added unto you. | Ѻ҆ба́че и҆щи́те црⷭ҇твїѧ бж҃їѧ, и҆ сїѧ̑ всѧ̑ приложа́тсѧ ва́мъ. |
|
32
|
32
|
| Fear not, little flock; for it is your Father’s good pleasure to give you the kingdom. | (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃з҃.) Не бо́йсѧ, ма́лое ста́до: ꙗ҆́кѡ бл҃гоизво́ли ѻ҆ц҃ъ ва́шъ да́ти ва́мъ црⷭ҇тво. |
|
33
|
33
|
| Sell that which ye have, and give alms; make for yourselves purses which wax not old, a treasure in the heavens that faileth not, where no thief draweth near, neither moth destroyeth. | Продади́те и҆мѣ́нїѧ ва̑ша и҆ дади́те ми́лостыню. Сотвори́те себѣ̀ влага̑лища неветша̑юща, сокро́вище неѡскꙋдѣ́емо на нб҃сѣ́хъ, и҆дѣ́же та́ть не приближа́етсѧ, ни мо́ль растлѣва́етъ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. | И҆дѣ́же бо сокро́вище ва́ше, тꙋ̀ и҆ се́рдце ва́ше бꙋ́детъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| Let your loins be girded about, and your lamps burning; | Да бꙋ́дꙋтъ чре́сла ва̑ша препоѧ̑сана, и҆ свѣти́лницы горѧ́щїи: |
|
36
|
36
|
| and be ye yourselves like unto men looking for their lord, when he shall return from the marriage feast; that, when he cometh and knocketh, they may straightaway open unto him. | и҆ вы̀ подо́бни человѣ́кѡмъ ча́ющымъ го́спода своегѡ̀, когда̀ возврати́тсѧ ѿ бра́ка, да прише́дшꙋ и҆ толкнꙋ́вшꙋ, а҆́бїе ѿве́рзꙋтъ є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
37
|
37
|
| Blessed are those servants, whom the lord when he cometh shall find watching: verily I say unto you, that he shall gird himself, and make them sit down to meat, and shall come and serve them. | Бл҃же́ни рабѝ ті́и, и҆̀хже прише́дъ госпо́дь ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ бдѧ́щихъ: а҆ми́нь гл҃ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ препоѧ́шетсѧ и҆ поса́дитъ и҆̀хъ, и҆ минꙋ́въ [пристꙋпи́въ] послꙋ́житъ и҆̀мъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And if he shall come in the second watch, and come in the third watch, and find them so, blessed are those servants. | И҆ а҆́ще прїи́детъ во вторꙋ́ю стра́жꙋ, и҆ въ тре́тїю стра́жꙋ прїи́детъ, и҆ ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ (и҆̀хъ) та́кѡ, бл҃же́ни сꙋ́ть рабѝ ті́и. |
|
39
|
39
|
| But know this, that if the master of the house had known in what hour the thief was coming, he would have watched, and not have left his house to be broken through. | Се́ же вѣ́дите, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́ще бы вѣ́далъ господи́нъ хра́мины, въ кі́й ча́съ та́ть прїи́детъ, бдѣ́лъ оу҆̀бо бы, и҆ не бы̀ да́лъ подкопа́ти до́мꙋ своегѡ̀. |
|
40
|
40
|
| Be ye therefore ready also: for in an hour that ye think not the Son of man cometh. | И҆ вы̀ оу҆̀бо бꙋ́дите гото́ви: ꙗ҆́кѡ, во́ньже ча́съ не мни́те, сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй прїи́детъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And Peter said unto him, Lord, speakest thou this parable unto us, or even unto all? | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ пе́тръ: гдⷭ҇и, къ на́мъ ли при́тчꙋ сїю̀ глаго́леши, и҆лѝ ко всѣ̑мъ; |
|
42
|
42
|
| And the Lord said, Who then is the faithful and wise steward, whom his lord shall set over his household, to give them their portion of food in due season? | Рече́ же гдⷭ҇ь: (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃и҃.) кто̀ оу҆̀бо є҆́сть вѣ́рный строи́тель и҆ мꙋ́дрый, є҆го́же поста́витъ госпо́дь над̾ че́лѧдїю свое́ю, даѧ́ти во вре́мѧ житомѣ́рїе; |
|
43
|
43
|
| Blessed is that servant, whom his lord when he cometh shall find so doing. | Бл҃же́нъ ра́бъ то́й, є҆го́же прише́дъ госпо́дь є҆гѡ̀ ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ творѧ́ща та́кѡ: |
|
44
|
44
|
| Of a truth I say unto you, that he will set him over all that he hath. | вои́стиннꙋ гл҃ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ над̾ всѣ́мъ и҆мѣ́нїемъ свои́мъ поста́витъ є҆го̀. |
|
45
|
45
|
| But if that servant shall say in his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; and shall begin to beat the menservants and the maidservants, and to eat and drink, and to be drunken; | А҆́ще же рече́тъ ра́бъ то́й въ се́рдцы свое́мъ: косни́тъ господи́нъ мо́й прїитѝ: и҆ начне́тъ би́ти рабы̑ и҆ рабы̑ни, ꙗ҆́сти же и҆ пи́ти и҆ оу҆пива́тисѧ: |
|
46
|
46
|
| the lord of that servant shall come in a day when he expecteth not, and in an hour when he knoweth not, and shall cut him asunder, and appoint his portion with the unfaithful. | прїи́детъ господи́нъ раба̀ тогѡ̀ въ де́нь, во́ньже не ча́етъ, и҆ въ ча́съ, во́ньже не вѣ́сть: и҆ расте́шетъ є҆го̀, и҆ ча́сть є҆гѡ̀ съ невѣ́рными положи́тъ. |
|
47
|
47
|
| And that servant, who knew his lord’s will, and made not ready, nor did according to his will, shall be beaten with many stripes; | То́й же ра́бъ вѣ́дѣвый во́лю господи́на своегѡ̀, и҆ не оу҆гото́вавъ, ни сотвори́въ по во́ли є҆гѡ̀, бїе́нъ бꙋ́детъ мно́гѡ: |
|
48
|
48
|
| but he that knew not, and did things worthy of stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes. And to whomsoever much is given, of him shall much be required: and to whom they commit much, of him will they ask the more. | невѣ́дѣвый же, сотвори́въ же достѡ́йнаѧ ра́намъ, бїе́нъ бꙋ́детъ ма́лѡ. (Заⷱ҇ ѯ҃ѳ҃.) Всѧ́комꙋ же, є҆мꙋ́же дано̀ бꙋ́детъ мно́гѡ, мно́гѡ взы́щетсѧ ѿ негѡ̀: и҆ є҆мꙋ́же преда́ша мно́жайше, мно́жайше про́сѧтъ [и҆стѧ́жꙋтъ] ѿ негѡ̀. |
|
49
|
49
|
| I came to cast fire to the earth; and what do I desire, if it is already kindled? | Ѻ҆гнѧ̀ прїидо́хъ воврещѝ на зе́млю, и҆ что̀ хощꙋ̀, а҆́ще оу҆жѐ возгорѣ́сѧ; |
|
50
|
50
|
| But I have a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I straitened till it be accomplished! | Кр҃ще́нїемъ же и҆́мамъ крⷭ҇ти́тисѧ, и҆ ка́кѡ оу҆держꙋ́сѧ, до́ндеже сконча́ютсѧ; |
|
51
|
51
|
| Think ye that I am come to give peace in the earth? I tell you, Nay; but rather division: | Мните́ ли, ꙗ҆́кѡ ми́ръ прїидо́хъ да́ти на зе́млю; нѝ, гл҃ю ва́мъ, но раздѣле́нїе. |
|
52
|
52
|
| for there shall be from henceforth five in one house divided, three against two, and two against three. | Бꙋ́дꙋтъ бо ѿсе́лѣ пѧ́ть во є҆ди́номъ домꙋ̀ раздѣле́ни, трїѐ на два̀, и҆ два̀ на трѝ: |
|
53
|
53
|
| Father shall be divided against son, and son against father; mother against daughter, and daughter against her mother; mother-in-law against her daughter-in-law, and daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. | раздѣли́тсѧ ѻ҆те́цъ на сы́на, и҆ сы́нъ на ѻ҆тца̀: ма́ти на дще́рь, и҆ дщѝ на ма́терь: свекры̀ на невѣ́стꙋ свою̀, и҆ невѣ́ста на свекро́вь свою̀. |
|
54
|
54
|
| And he said to the multitudes also, When ye see a cloud rising out of the west, straightaway ye say, There cometh a shower; and so it cometh to pass. | Гл҃аше же и҆ наро́дѡмъ: є҆гда̀ оу҆́зрите ѡ҆́блакъ восходѧ́щь ѿ за́пада, а҆́бїе глаго́лете: тꙋ́ча грѧде́тъ: и҆ быва́етъ та́кѡ. |
|
55
|
55
|
| And when ye see a south wind blowing, ye say, There will be a scorching heat; and it cometh to pass. | И҆ є҆гда̀ ю҆́гъ вѣ́ющь, глаго́лете: зно́й бꙋ́детъ: и҆ быва́етъ. |
|
56
|
56
|
| Ye hypocrites, ye know how to interpret the face of the earth and the heaven; but how is it that ye do not interpret this time? | Лицемѣ́ри, лицѐ не́бꙋ и҆ землѝ вѣ́сте и҆скꙋша́ти: вре́мене же сегѡ̀ ка́кѡ не и҆скꙋша́ете; |
|
57
|
57
|
| And why even of yourselves judge ye not what is right? | Что́ же и҆ ѡ҆ себѣ̀ не сꙋ́дите пра́ведное; |
|
58
|
58
|
| For as thou art going with thine adversary before the magistrate, on the way give diligence to be quit of him; lest haply he drag thee unto the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and the officer cast thee into prison. | Є҆гда́ бо грѧде́ши съ сопе́рникомъ твои́мъ ко кнѧ́зю, на пꙋтѝ да́ждь дѣ́ланїе [потщи́сѧ] и҆збы́ти ѿ негѡ̀: да не ка́кѡ привлече́тъ тебѐ къ сꙋдїѝ, и҆ сꙋдїѧ̀ тѧ̀ преда́стъ слꙋзѣ̀, и҆ слꙋга̀ всади́тъ тѧ̀ въ темни́цꙋ: |
|
59
|
59
|
| I say unto thee, Thou shalt by no means come out thence, till thou have paid the very last mite. | гл҃ю тебѣ̀: не и҆зы́деши ѿтꙋ́дꙋ, до́ндеже и҆ послѣ́днюю мѣ́дницꙋ возда́си. |
|
Chapter 13
|
Глава́ г҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now there were some present at that very season who told him of the Galileans, whose blood Pilate had mingled with their sacrifices. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃.) Прїидо́ша же нѣ́цыи въ то̀ вре́мѧ, повѣ́дающе є҆мꙋ̀ ѡ҆ галїле́ехъ, и҆́хже кро́вь пїла́тъ смѣсѝ съ же́ртвами и҆́хъ. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto them, Think ye that these Galileans were sinners above all the Galileans, because they have suffered such things? | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ и҆̀мъ: мните́ ли, ꙗ҆́кѡ галїле́ане сі́и грѣ́шнѣйши па́че всѣ́хъ галїле́анъ бѧ́хꙋ, ꙗ҆́кѡ та́кѡ постра́даша; |
|
3
|
3
|
| I tell you, Nay: but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish. | Нѝ, гл҃ю ва́мъ: но а҆́ще не пока́етесѧ, всѝ та́кожде поги́бнете. |
|
4
|
4
|
| Or those eighteen, upon whom the tower in Siloam fell, and killed them, think ye that they were offenders above all the men that dwell in Jerusalem? | И҆лѝ ѻ҆́ни ѻ҆смьна́десѧте, на ни́хже падѐ сто́лпъ сїлѡа́мскїй и҆ побѝ и҆̀хъ, мни́те ли, ꙗ҆́кѡ ті́и до́лжнѣйши бѧ́хꙋ па́че всѣ́хъ живꙋ́щихъ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ; |
|
5
|
5
|
| I tell you, Nay: but, except ye repent, ye shall all in like manner perish. | Нѝ, гл҃ю ва́мъ: но а҆́ще не пока́етесѧ, всѝ та́кожде поги́бнете. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And he spake this parable; A certain man had a fig tree planted in his vineyard; and he came seeking fruit thereon, and found none. | Гл҃аше же сїю̀ при́тчꙋ: смоко́вницꙋ и҆мѧ́ше нѣ́кїй въ вїногра́дѣ свое́мъ всажденꙋ̀: и҆ прїи́де и҆щѧ̀ плода̀ на не́й, и҆ не ѡ҆брѣ́те: |
|
7
|
7
|
| And he said unto the vinedresser, Behold, these three years I come seeking fruit on this fig tree, and find none: cut it down; why doth it also cumber the ground? | рече́ же къ вїнаре́ви: сѐ тре́тїе лѣ́то, ѿне́лиже прихождꙋ̀ и҆щѧ̀ плода̀ на смоко́вницѣ се́й, и҆ не ѡ҆брѣта́ю: посѣцы̀ ю҆̀ (оу҆̀бо), вскꙋ́ю и҆ зе́млю оу҆пражнѧ́етъ; |
|
8
|
8
|
| And answering, he saith unto him, Lord, let it alone this year also, till I shall dig about it, and dung it: | Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿвѣща́въ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: го́споди, ѡ҆ста́ви ю҆̀ и҆ сѐ лѣ́то, до́ндеже ѡ҆копа́ю ѡ҆́крестъ є҆ѧ̀ и҆ ѡ҆сы́плю гно́емъ: |
|
9
|
9
|
| and if it bear fruit, well; but if not, thereafter thou shalt cut it down. | и҆ а҆́ще оу҆́бѡ сотвори́тъ пло́дъ: а҆́ще ли же нѝ, во грѧдꙋ́щее посѣче́ши ю҆̀. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And he was teaching in one of the synagogues on the sabbath day. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃а҃.) Бѧ́ше же оу҆чѧ̀ на є҆ди́номъ ѿ со́нмищъ въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ: |
|
11
|
11
|
| And behold, there was a woman that had a spirit of infirmity eighteen years; and she was bowed together, and could in no wise lift herself up. | и҆ сѐ жена̀ бѣ̀ и҆мꙋ́щи дꙋ́хъ недꙋ́женъ лѣ́тъ ѻ҆смьна́десѧть, и҆ бѣ̀ слѧ́ка и҆ не могꙋ́щи восклони́тисѧ ѿню́дъ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And when Jesus saw her, he called her, and said to her, Woman, thou art loosed from thine infirmity. | Ви́дѣвъ же ю҆̀ і҆и҃съ, пригласѝ и҆ речѐ є҆́й: же́но, ѿпꙋщена̀ є҆сѝ ѿ недꙋ́га твоегѡ̀. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And he laid his hands upon her: and immediately she was made straight, and glorified God. | И҆ возложѝ на ню̀ рꙋ́цѣ: и҆ а҆́бїе простре́сѧ, и҆ сла́влѧше бг҃а. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And the ruler of the synagogue, being moved with indignation because Jesus had healed on the sabbath, answered and said to the multitude, There are six days in which men ought to work: in these therefore come and be healed, and not on the day of the sabbath. | Ѿвѣща́въ же старѣ́йшина собо́рꙋ, негодꙋ́ѧ, занѐ въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ и҆сцѣлѝ (ю҆̀) і҆и҃съ, глаго́лаше наро́дꙋ: ше́сть дні́й є҆́сть, въ нѧ́же досто́итъ дѣ́лати: въ ты̑ѧ оу҆̀бо приходѧ́ще цѣли́тесѧ, а҆ не въ де́нь сꙋббѡ́тный. |
|
15
|
15
|
| The Lord then answered him, and said, Ye hypocrites, doth not each one of you on the sabbath loose his ox or his ass from the stall, and lead him away to watering? | Ѿвѣща́ (же) оу҆̀бо є҆мꙋ̀ гдⷭ҇ь и҆ речѐ: лицемѣ́ре, ко́ждо ва́съ въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ не ѿрѣша́етъ ли своего̀ вола̀ и҆лѝ ѻ҆сла̀ ѿ ꙗ҆́слїй, и҆ ве́дъ напаѧ́етъ, |
|
16
|
16
|
| And ought not this woman, being a daughter of Abraham, whom Satan had bound, lo, these eighteen years, to have been loosed from this bond on the day of the sabbath? | сїю́ же дще́рь а҆враа́млю сꙋ́щꙋ, ю҆́же свѧза̀ сатана̀ сѐ ѻ҆смоена́десѧте лѣ́то, не досто́ѧше ли разрѣши́тисѧ є҆́й ѿ ю҆́зы сеѧ̀ въ де́нь сꙋббѡ́тный; |
|
17
|
17
|
| And as he said these things, all his adversaries were put to shame: and all the multitude rejoiced for all the glorious things that were done by him. | И҆ сїѧ̑ є҆мꙋ̀ глаго́лющꙋ, стыдѧ́хꙋсѧ всѝ противлѧ́ющїисѧ є҆мꙋ̀: и҆ всѝ лю́дїе ра́довахꙋсѧ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ сла́вныхъ быва́ющихъ ѿ негѡ̀. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And he said, Unto what is the kingdom of God like? and whereunto shall I liken it? | (Заⷱ҇ о҃в҃.) Гл҃аше же: комꙋ̀ подо́бно є҆́сть црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе; и҆ комꙋ̀ оу҆подо́блю є҆̀; |
|
19
|
19
|
| It is like unto a grain of mustard seed, which a man took, and cast into his own garden; and it grew, and became a great tree; and the birds of the heaven lodged in the branches thereof. | Подо́бно є҆́сть зе́рнꙋ горꙋ́шнꙋ, є҆́же прїе́мъ человѣ́къ вве́рже въ вертогра́дъ сво́й: и҆ возрастѐ, и҆ бы́сть дре́во ве́лїе, и҆ пти̑цы небє́сныѧ всели́шасѧ въ вѣ́твїе є҆гѡ̀. |
|
20
|
20
|
| Again he said, Whereunto shall I liken the kingdom of God? | Па́ки речѐ: комꙋ̀ оу҆подо́блю црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе; |
|
21
|
21
|
| It is like unto leaven, which a woman took and hid in three measures of meal, till it was all leavened. | подо́бно є҆́сть ква́сꙋ, є҆го́же прїе́мши жена̀, скры̀ въ са́тѣхъ трїе́хъ мꙋкѝ, до́ндеже вски́се всѐ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And he went on his way through cities and villages, teaching, and journeying on unto Jerusalem. | И҆ прохожда́ше сквозѣ̀ гра́ды и҆ вє́си, оу҆чѧ̀ и҆ ше́ствїе творѧ̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And one said unto him, Lord, are they few that are saved? And he said unto them, | Рече́ же нѣ́кїй є҆мꙋ̀: гдⷭ҇и, а҆́ще ма́лѡ є҆́сть спаса́ющихсѧ; Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ къ ни̑мъ: |
|
24
|
24
|
| Strive to enter in by the narrow gate: for many, I say unto you, shall seek to enter in, and shall not be able. | подвиза́йтесѧ вни́ти сквозѣ̀ тѣ̑снаѧ врата̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ мно́зи, глаго́лю ва́мъ, взы́щꙋтъ вни́ти, и҆ не возмо́гꙋтъ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| When once the master of the house is risen up, and hath shut the door, and ye begin to stand without, and to knock at the door, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us; and he shall answer and say to you, I know you not whence ye are; | Ѿне́лѣже воста́нетъ до́мꙋ влады́ка, и҆ затвори́тъ двє́ри, и҆ на́чнете внѣ̀ стоѧ́ти и҆ оу҆дарѧ́ти въ двє́ри, глаго́люще: гдⷭ҇и, гдⷭ҇и, ѿве́рзи на́мъ. И҆ ѿвѣща́въ рече́тъ ва́мъ: не вѣ́мъ ва́съ, ѿкꙋ́дꙋ є҆стѐ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| then shall ye begin to say, We did eat and drink in thy presence, and thou didst teach in our streets; | Тогда̀ на́чнете глаго́лати: ꙗ҆до́хомъ пред̾ тобо́ю и҆ пи́хомъ, и҆ на распꙋ́тїихъ на́шихъ оу҆чи́лъ є҆сѝ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| and he shall say, I tell you, I know you not whence ye are; depart from me, all ye workers of iniquity. | И҆ рече́тъ: глаго́лю ва́мъ, не вѣ́мъ ва́съ, ѿкꙋ́дꙋ є҆стѐ: ѿстꙋпи́те ѿ менє̀, всѝ дѣ́лателїе непра́вды. |
|
28
|
28
|
| There shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth, when ye shall see Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, and all the prophets, in the kingdom of God, and yourselves cast forth without. | Тꙋ̀ бꙋ́детъ пла́чь и҆ скре́жетъ зꙋбѡ́мъ, є҆гда̀ оу҆́зрите а҆враа́ма и҆ і҆саа́ка и҆ і҆а́кѡва и҆ всѧ̑ прⷪ҇ро́ки во црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи, ва́съ же и҆згони́мыхъ во́нъ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And they shall come from the east and west and north and south, and shall sit down in the kingdom of God. | И҆ прїи́дꙋтъ ѿ востѡ́къ и҆ за́падъ и҆ сѣ́вера и҆ ю҆́га, и҆ возлѧ́гꙋтъ въ црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And behold, there are last who shall be first, and there are first who shall be last. | И҆ сѐ сꙋ́ть послѣ́днїи, и҆́же бꙋ́дꙋтъ пе́рви, и҆ сꙋ́ть пе́рвїи, и҆̀же бꙋ́дꙋтъ послѣ́дни. |
|
31
|
31
|
| On that same day there came certain Pharisees, saying to him, Get thee out, and go hence: for Herod would fain kill thee. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃г҃.) Въ то́й де́нь пристꙋпи́ша нѣ́цый ѿ фарїсє́й, глаго́люще є҆мꙋ̀: и҆зы́ди и҆ и҆дѝ ѿсю́дꙋ, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆́рѡдъ хо́щетъ тѧ̀ оу҆би́ти. |
|
32
|
32
|
| And he said unto them, Go and say to that fox, Behold, I cast out demons and perform cures today and tomorrow, and the third day I am perfected. | И҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: ше́дше рцы́те ли́сꙋ томꙋ̀: сѐ и҆згоню̀ бѣ́сы и҆ и҆сцѣлє́нїѧ творю̀ дне́сь и҆ оу҆́трѣ, и҆ въ тре́тїй сконча́юсѧ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| Nevertheless I must go on my way today and tomorrow and the day following: for it cannot be that a prophet perish out of Jerusalem. | Ѻ҆ба́че подоба́етъ мѝ дне́сь и҆ оу҆́трѣ и҆ въ бли́жнїй и҆тѝ: ꙗ҆́кѡ невозмо́жно є҆́сть прⷪ҇ро́кꙋ поги́бнꙋти кромѣ̀ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ма. |
|
34
|
34
|
| O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, that killeth the prophets, and stoneth them that are sent unto her! how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her own brood under her wings, and ye would not! | І҆ерⷭ҇ли́ме, і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ме, и҆зби́вый прⷪ҇ро́ки и҆ ка́менїемъ побива́ѧ пѡ́сланныѧ къ тебѣ̀, колькра́ты восхотѣ́хъ собра́ти ча̑да твоѧ̑, ꙗ҆́коже коко́шъ гнѣздо̀ своѐ под̾ крилѣ̑, и҆ не восхотѣ́сте; |
|
35
|
35
|
| Behold, your house is left unto you desolate: and I say unto you, Ye shall not see me, until the time come when ye shall say, Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord. | Сѐ ѡ҆ставлѧ́етсѧ ва́мъ до́мъ ва́шъ пꙋ́стъ. Глаго́лю же ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆́мате менѐ ви́дѣти, до́ндеже прїи́детъ, є҆гда̀ рече́те: блгⷭ҇ве́нъ грѧды́й во и҆́мѧ гдⷭ҇не. |
|
Chapter 14
|
Глава́ д҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And it came to pass, when he went into the house of one of the rulers of the Pharisees on a sabbath to eat bread, that they were watching him. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃д҃.) И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ вни́ти є҆мꙋ̀ въ до́мъ нѣ́коегѡ кнѧ́зѧ фарїсе́йска въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ хлѣ́бъ ꙗ҆́сти, и҆ ті́и бѧ́хꙋ назира́юще є҆го̀. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And behold, there was before him a certain man that had the dropsy. | И҆ сѐ человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй, и҆мы́й водны́й трꙋ́дъ, бѣ̀ пред̾ ни́мъ. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And Jesus answered and spake unto the lawyers and Pharisees, saying, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath? | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ і҆и҃съ речѐ къ зако́нникѡмъ и҆ фарїсе́ѡмъ, глаго́лѧ: а҆́ще достои́тъ въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ цѣли́ти; |
|
4
|
4
|
| But they held their peace. And he took him, and healed him, and let him go. | Ѻ҆ни́ же оу҆молча́ша. И҆ прїе́мъ и҆сцѣлѝ є҆го̀, и҆ ѿпꙋстѝ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And he answered them and said, Which of you shall have a son or an ox fallen into a well, and will not straightaway draw him up on the sabbath day? | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ къ ни̑мъ речѐ: кото́рагѡ ѿ ва́съ ѻ҆се́лъ и҆лѝ во́лъ въ стꙋдене́цъ впаде́тъ, и҆ не а҆́бїе ли и҆сто́ргнетъ є҆го̀ въ де́нь сꙋббѡ́тный; |
|
6
|
6
|
| And they could not answer him again unto these things. | И҆ не возмого́ша ѿвѣща́ти є҆мꙋ̀ къ си̑мъ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And he spake a parable unto those that were bidden, when he marked how they chose out the chief seats; saying unto them, | Гл҃аше же къ зва̑ннымъ при́тчꙋ, ѡ҆бдержѧ̀ [внима́ѧ], ка́кѡ предсѣда̑нїѧ и҆збира́хꙋ, глаго́лѧ къ ни̑мъ: |
|
8
|
8
|
| When thou art bidden of any man to a marriage feast, sit not down in the chief seat; lest haply a more honorable man than thou be bidden of him, | є҆гда̀ зва́нъ бꙋ́деши ки́мъ на бра́къ, не сѧ́ди на пре́днемъ мѣ́стѣ: є҆да̀ кто̀ честнѣ́е тебє̀ бꙋ́детъ зва́нныхъ, |
|
9
|
9
|
| and he that bade thee and him shall come and say to thee, Give this man place; and then thou shalt begin with shame to take the lowest place. | и҆ прише́дъ и҆́же тебѐ зва́вый и҆ ѻ҆́наго, рече́тъ тѝ: да́ждь семꙋ̀ мѣ́сто: и҆ тогда̀ на́чнеши со стꙋдо́мъ послѣ́днее мѣ́сто держа́ти. |
|
10
|
10
|
| But when thou art bidden, go and sit down in the lowest place; that when he that hath bidden thee cometh, he may say to thee, Friend, go up higher: then shalt thou have glory in the presence of them that sit at meat with thee. | Но є҆гда̀ зва́нъ бꙋ́деши, ше́дъ сѧ́ди на послѣ́днемъ мѣ́стѣ, да є҆гда̀ прїи́детъ зва́вый тѧ̀, рече́тъ тѝ: дрꙋ́же, посѧ́ди вы́ше: тогда̀ бꙋ́детъ тѝ сла́ва пред̾ зва́нными съ тобо́ю. |
|
11
|
11
|
| For everyone that exalteth himself shall be humbled; and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. | Ꙗ҆́кѡ всѧ́къ возносѧ́йсѧ смири́тсѧ, и҆ смирѧ́ѧйсѧ вознесе́тсѧ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And he said to him also that had bidden him, When thou makest a dinner or a supper, call not thy friends, nor thy brethren, nor thy kinsmen, nor rich neighbors; lest haply they also bid thee again, and a recompense be made thee. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃е҃.) Гл҃аше же и҆ ко зва́вшемꙋ є҆го̀: є҆гда̀ сотвори́ши ѡ҆бѣ́дъ и҆лѝ ве́черю, не зовѝ дрꙋгѡ́въ твои́хъ, ни бра́тїи твоеѧ̀, ни срѡ́дникъ твои́хъ, ни сосѣ̑дъ бога́тыхъ: є҆да̀ когда̀ и҆ ті́и тѧ̀ та́кожде воззовꙋ́тъ, и҆ бꙋ́детъ тѝ воздаѧ́нїе. |
|
13
|
13
|
| But when thou makest a feast, bid the poor, the maimed, the lame, the blind: | Но є҆гда̀ твори́ши пи́ръ, зовѝ ни́щыѧ, маломѡ́щныѧ, хромы̑ѧ, слѣпы̑ѧ: |
|
14
|
14
|
| and thou shalt be blessed; because they have not wherewith to recompense thee: for thou shalt be recompensed in the resurrection of the just. | и҆ блаже́нъ бꙋ́деши, ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆́мꙋтъ тѝ что̀ возда́ти: возда́стъ же тѝ сѧ̀ въ воскреше́нїе пра́ведныхъ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And when one of them that sat at meat with him heard these things, he said unto him, Blessed is he that shall eat dinner in the kingdom of God. | Слы́шавъ же нѣ́кїй ѿ возлежа́щихъ съ ни́мъ сїѧ̑, речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: блаже́нъ, и҆́же снѣ́сть ѡ҆бѣ́дъ въ црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи. |
|
16
|
16
|
| But he said unto him, A certain man made a great supper; and he bade many: | (Заⷱ҇ о҃ѕ҃.) Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй сотворѝ ве́черю ве́лїю, и҆ зва̀ мнѡ́ги: |
|
17
|
17
|
| and he sent forth his servant at supper time to say to them that were bidden, Come; for all things are now ready. | и҆ посла̀ раба̀ своего̀ въ го́дъ ве́чери рещѝ зва̑ннымъ: грѧди́те, ꙗ҆́кѡ оу҆жѐ готѡ́ва сꙋ́ть всѧ̑. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And they all with one consent began to make excuse. The first said unto him, I have bought a field, and I must needs go out and see it; I pray thee have me excused. | И҆ нача́ша вкꙋ́пѣ ѿрица́тисѧ всѝ. Пе́рвый речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: село̀ кꙋпи́хъ, и҆ и҆́мамъ нꙋждꙋ̀ и҆зы́ти и҆ ви́дѣти є҆̀. Молю́тисѧ, и҆мѣ́й мѧ̀ ѿрече́на. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And another said, I have bought five yoke of oxen, and I go to prove them; I pray thee have me excused. | И҆ дрꙋгі́й речѐ: сꙋпрꙋ̑гъ волѡ́въ кꙋпи́хъ пѧ́ть, и҆ грѧдꙋ̀ и҆скꙋси́ти и҆̀хъ: молю́ тѧ, и҆мѣ́й мѧ̀ ѿрече́на. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And another said, I have married a wife, and therefore I cannot come. | И҆ дрꙋгі́й речѐ: женꙋ̀ поѧ́хъ, и҆ сегѡ̀ ра́ди не могꙋ̀ прїитѝ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And that servant came, and told his lord these things. Then the master of the house being angry said to his servant, Go out quickly into the streets and lanes of the city, and bring in hither the poor and maimed and lame and blind. | И҆ прише́дъ ра́бъ то́й повѣ́да господи́нꙋ своемꙋ̀ сїѧ̑. Тогда̀ разгнѣ́вавсѧ до́мꙋ влады́ка, речѐ рабꙋ̀ своемꙋ̀: и҆зы́ди ско́рѡ на распꙋ̑тїѧ и҆ стѡ́гны гра́да, и҆ ни́щыѧ и҆ бѣ̑дныѧ и҆ слѣпы̑ѧ и҆ хромы̑ѧ введѝ сѣ́мѡ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And the servant said, Lord, it is done as thou hast commanded, and yet there is room. | И҆ речѐ ра́бъ. Го́споди, бы́сть ꙗ҆́коже повелѣ́лъ є҆сѝ, и҆ є҆щѐ мѣ́сто є҆́сть. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And the lord said unto the servant, Go out into the highways and hedges, and constrain them to come in, that my house may be filled. | И҆ речѐ господи́нъ къ рабꙋ̀: и҆зы́ди на пꙋти̑ и҆ халꙋ́ги, и҆ оу҆бѣдѝ вни́ти, да напо́лнитсѧ до́мъ мо́й: |
|
24
|
24
|
| For I say unto you, that none of those men that were bidden shall taste of my supper. For many are called, but few chosen. | глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ни є҆ди́нъ мꙋже́й тѣ́хъ зва́нныхъ вкꙋ́ситъ моеѧ̀ ве́чери: мно́зи бо сꙋ́ть зва́ни, ма́лѡ же и҆збра́нныхъ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| Now there went with him great multitudes: and he turned, and said unto them, | (Заⷱ҇ о҃з҃.) И҆дѧ́хꙋ же съ ни́мъ наро́ди мно́зи: и҆ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: |
|
26
|
26
|
| If any man cometh unto me, and hateth not his father, and mother, and wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple. | а҆́ще кто̀ грѧде́тъ ко мнѣ̀, и҆ не возненави́дитъ ѻ҆тца̀ своего̀ и҆ ма́терь, и҆ женꙋ̀, и҆ ча̑дъ, и҆ бра́тїю, и҆ се́стръ, є҆ще́ же и҆ дꙋ́шꙋ свою̀, не мо́жетъ мо́й бы́ти оу҆чени́къ: |
|
27
|
27
|
| And whosoever doth not bear his cross, and come after me, cannot be my disciple. | и҆ и҆́же не но́ситъ креста̀ своегѡ̀ и҆ в̾слѣ́дъ менє̀ грѧде́тъ, не мо́жетъ мо́й бы́ти оу҆чени́къ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| For which of you, that desireth to build a tower, doth not first sit down and count the cost, whether he have wherewith to complete it? | Кто́ бо ѿ ва́съ, хотѧ́й сто́лпъ созда́ти, не пре́жде ли сѣ́дъ расчте́тъ и҆мѣ́нїе, а҆́ще и҆́мать, є҆́же є҆́сть на соверше́нїе, |
|
29
|
29
|
| Lest haply, when he hath laid a foundation, and is not able to finish, all that behold begin to mock him, | да не, когда̀ положи́тъ ѡ҆снова́нїе и҆ не возмо́жетъ соверши́ти, всѝ ви́дѧщїи начнꙋ́тъ рꙋга́тисѧ є҆мꙋ̀, |
|
30
|
30
|
| saying, This man began to build, and was not able to finish. | глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ се́й человѣ́къ нача́тъ зда́ти и҆ не мо́же соверши́ти. |
|
31
|
31
|
| Or what king, as he goeth to encounter another king in war, sitteth not down first and taketh counsel whether he is able with ten thousand to meet him that cometh against him with twenty thousand? | И҆лѝ кі́й ца́рь и҆ды́й ко и҆но́мꙋ царю̀ сни́тисѧ съ ни́мъ на бра́нь, не сѣ́дъ ли пре́жде совѣщава́етъ, а҆́ще си́ленъ є҆́сть срѣ́сти съ десѧтїю̀ ты́сѧщъ грѧдꙋ́щаго со двѣма́десѧтма ты́сѧщама на́нь; |
|
32
|
32
|
| Or else, while the other is yet a great way off, he sendeth an embassage, and asketh conditions of peace. | А҆́ще ли же нѝ, є҆щѐ дале́че є҆мꙋ̀ сꙋ́щꙋ, моле́нїе посла́въ мо́литсѧ ѡ҆ смире́нїи. |
|
33
|
33
|
| So therefore whosoever he be of you that renounceth not all that he hath, he cannot be my disciple. | Та́кѡ оу҆̀бо всѧ́къ ѿ ва́съ, и҆́же не ѿрече́тсѧ всегѡ̀ своегѡ̀ и҆мѣ́нїѧ, не мо́жетъ бы́ти мо́й оу҆чени́къ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| Salt is good: but if the salt have lost its savor, wherewith shall it be seasoned? | Добро̀ є҆́сть со́ль: а҆́ще же со́ль ѡ҆бꙋѧ́етъ, чи́мъ ѡ҆соли́тсѧ; |
|
35
|
35
|
| It is fit neither for the land nor for the dunghill: men cast it out. He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. | Ни въ зе́млю, ни въ гно́й потре́бна є҆́сть: во́нъ и҆зсы́плютъ ю҆̀. И҆мѣ́ѧй оу҆́шы слы́шати, да слы́шитъ. |
|
Chapter 15
|
Глава́ є҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now all the publicans and sinners were drawing near unto him to hear him. | (Заⷱ҇ о҃и҃.) Бѧ́хꙋ же приближа́ющесѧ къ немꙋ̀ всѝ мы́тарїе и҆ грѣ̑шницы, послꙋ́шати є҆гѡ̀. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And the Pharisees and the scribes murmured, saying, This man receiveth sinners, and eateth with them. | И҆ ропта́хꙋ фарїсе́є и҆ кни́жницы, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ се́й грѣ́шники прїе́млетъ и҆ съ ни́ми ꙗ҆́стъ. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he spake unto them this parable, saying, | Рече́ же къ ни̑мъ при́тчꙋ сїю̀, глаго́лѧ: |
|
4
|
4
|
| What man of you, having a hundred sheep, and having lost one of them, doth not leave the ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost, until he find it? | кі́й человѣ́къ ѿ ва́съ и҆мы́й сто̀ ѻ҆ве́цъ, и҆ погꙋ́бль є҆ди́нꙋ ѿ ни́хъ, не ѡ҆ста́витъ ли девѧти́десѧти и҆ девѧтѝ въ пꙋсты́ни, и҆ и҆́детъ в̾слѣ́дъ поги́бшїѧ, до́ндеже ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ ю҆̀; |
|
5
|
5
|
| And when he hath found it, he layeth it on his shoulders, rejoicing. | И҆ ѡ҆брѣ́тъ возлага́етъ на ра̑мѣ своѝ ра́дꙋѧсѧ: |
|
6
|
6
|
| And when he cometh home, he calleth together his friends and his neighbors, saying unto them, Rejoice with me, for I have found my sheep which was lost. | и҆ прише́дъ въ до́мъ, созыва́етъ дрꙋ́ги и҆ сосѣ́ды, глаго́лѧ и҆̀мъ: ра́дꙋйтесѧ со мно́ю, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѡ҆брѣто́хъ ѻ҆вцꙋ̀ мою̀ поги́бшꙋю. |
|
7
|
7
|
| I say unto you, that even so there shall be joy in heaven over one sinner that repenteth, more than over ninety and nine righteous persons, who need no repentance. | Гл҃ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ та́кѡ ра́дость бꙋ́детъ на нб҃сѝ ѡ҆ є҆ди́номъ грѣ́шницѣ ка́ющемсѧ, не́жели ѡ҆ девѧти́десѧтихъ и҆ девѧтѝ пра́вєдникъ, и҆̀же не тре́бꙋютъ покаѧ́нїѧ. |
|
8
|
8
|
| Or what woman having ten pieces of silver, if she lose one piece, doth not light a lamp, and sweep the house, and seek diligently until she find it? | И҆лѝ ка́ѧ жена̀ и҆мꙋ́щи де́сѧть дра́хмъ, а҆́ще погꙋби́тъ дра́хмꙋ є҆ди́нꙋ, не вжига́етъ ли свѣти́лника, и҆ помете́тъ хра́минꙋ, и҆ и҆́щетъ прилѣ́жнѡ, до́ндеже ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ; |
|
9
|
9
|
| And when she hath found it, she calleth together her friends and her neighbors, saying, Rejoice with me, for I have found the piece which I had lost. | И҆ ѡ҆брѣ́тши созыва́етъ дрꙋги̑ни и҆ сосѣ́ды, глаго́лющи: ра́дꙋйтесѧ со мно́ю, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѡ҆брѣто́хъ дра́хмꙋ поги́бшꙋю. |
|
10
|
10
|
| Even so, I say unto you, there is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repenteth. | Та́кѡ, глаго́лю ва́мъ, ра́дость быва́етъ пред̾ а҆́гг҃лы бж҃їими ѡ҆ є҆ди́номъ грѣ́шницѣ ка́ющемсѧ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And he said, A certain man had two sons: | (Заⷱ҇ о҃ѳ҃.) Рече́ же: человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй и҆мѣ̀ два̀ сы̑на: |
|
12
|
12
|
| and the younger of them said to his father, Father, give me the portion of thy substance that falleth to me. And he divided unto them his living. | и҆ речѐ ю҆нѣ́йшїй є҆ю̀ [ѿ ни́хъ] ѻ҆тцꙋ̀: ѻ҆́тче, да́ждь мѝ досто́йнꙋю ча́сть и҆мѣ́нїѧ. И҆ раздѣлѝ и҆́ма и҆мѣ́нїе. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And not many days after, the younger son gathered all together and took his journey into a far country; and there he wasted his substance with riotous living. | И҆ не по мно́зѣхъ дне́хъ собра́въ всѐ мні́й сы́нъ, ѿи́де на странꙋ̀ дале́че, и҆ тꙋ̀ расточѝ и҆мѣ́нїе своѐ, живы́й блꙋ́днѡ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And when he had spent all, there arose a mighty famine in that country; and he began to be in want. | И҆зжи́вшꙋ же є҆мꙋ̀ всѐ, бы́сть гла́дъ крѣ́покъ на странѣ̀ то́й, и҆ то́й нача́тъ лиша́тисѧ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he went and joined himself to one of the citizens of that country; and he sent him into his fields to feed swine. | И҆ ше́дъ прилѣпи́сѧ є҆ди́номꙋ ѿ жи́тєль тоѧ̀ страны̀: и҆ посла̀ є҆го̀ на се́ла своѧ̑ пастѝ свинїѧ̑. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And he would fain have filled his belly with the husks that the swine did eat: and no man gave unto him. | И҆ жела́ше насы́тити чре́во своѐ ѿ рожє́цъ, ꙗ҆̀же ꙗ҆дѧ́хꙋ свинїѧ̑: и҆ никто́же даѧ́ше є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
17
|
17
|
| But when he came to himself he said, How many hired servants of my father’s have bread enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger! | Въ себе́ же прише́дъ, речѐ: коли́кѡ нае́мникѡмъ ѻ҆тца̀ моегѡ̀ и҆збыва́ютъ хлѣ́бы, а҆́зъ же гла́домъ ги́блю; |
|
18
|
18
|
| I will arise and go to my father, and will say unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and in thy sight: | Воста́въ и҆дꙋ̀ ко ѻ҆тцꙋ̀ моемꙋ̀, и҆ рекꙋ̀ є҆мꙋ̀: ѻ҆́тче, согрѣши́хъ на нб҃о и҆ пред̾ тобо́ю, |
|
19
|
19
|
| and I am no more worthy to be called thy son: make me as one of thy hired servants. | и҆ оу҆жѐ нѣ́смь досто́инъ нарещи́сѧ сы́нъ тво́й; сотвори́ мѧ ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆ди́наго ѿ нає́мникъ твои́хъ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And he arose, and came to his father. But while he was yet afar off, his father saw him, and was moved with compassion, and ran, and fell on his neck, and kissed him. | И҆ воста́въ и҆́де ко ѻ҆тцꙋ̀ своемꙋ̀. Є҆ще́ же є҆мꙋ̀ дале́че сꙋ́щꙋ, оу҆зрѣ̀ є҆го̀ ѻ҆те́цъ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ ми́лъ є҆мꙋ̀ бы́сть, и҆ те́къ нападѐ на вы́ю є҆гѡ̀, и҆ ѡ҆блобыза̀ є҆го̀. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And the son said unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and in thy sight: and I am no more worthy to be called thy son. | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ сы́нъ: ѻ҆́тче, согрѣши́хъ на нб҃о и҆ пред̾ тобо́ю, и҆ оу҆жѐ нѣ́смь досто́инъ нарещи́сѧ сы́нъ тво́й. |
|
22
|
22
|
| But the father said to his servants, Bring forth the best robe, and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet: | Рече́ же ѻ҆те́цъ къ рабѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: и҆знеси́те ѻ҆де́ждꙋ пе́рвꙋю и҆ ѡ҆блецы́те є҆го̀, и҆ дади́те пе́рстень на рꙋ́кꙋ є҆гѡ̀ и҆ сапогѝ на но́зѣ: |
|
23
|
23
|
| and bring the fatted calf, and kill it, and let us eat, and make merry: | и҆ приве́дше теле́цъ оу҆пита́нный заколи́те, и҆ ꙗ҆́дше весели́мсѧ: |
|
24
|
24
|
| for this my son was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. And they began to be merry. | ꙗ҆́кѡ сы́нъ мо́й се́й ме́ртвъ бѣ̀, и҆ ѡ҆живѐ: и҆ и҆зги́блъ бѣ̀, и҆ ѡ҆брѣ́тесѧ. И҆ нача́ша весели́тисѧ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| Now his elder son was in the field: and as he came and drew nigh to the house, he heard music and dancing. | Бѣ́ же сы́нъ є҆гѡ̀ ста́рѣй на селѣ̀: и҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ грѧды́й прибли́жисѧ къ до́мꙋ, слы́ша пѣ́нїе и҆ ли́ки: |
|
26
|
26
|
| And he called to him one of the servants, and inquired what these things might be. | и҆ призва́въ є҆ди́наго ѿ ѻ҆́трѡкъ, вопроша́ше: что̀ (оу҆̀бо) сїѧ̑ сꙋ́ть; |
|
27
|
27
|
| And he said unto him, Thy brother is come; and thy father hath killed the fatted calf, because he hath received him safe and sound. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ бра́тъ тво́й прїи́де: и҆ закла̀ ѻ҆те́цъ тво́й телца̀ оу҆пита́нна, ꙗ҆́кѡ здра́ва є҆го̀ прїѧ́тъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But he was angry, and would not go in: therefore his father came out, and entreated him. | Разгнѣ́васѧ же, и҆ не хотѧ́ше вни́ти. Ѻ҆те́цъ же є҆гѡ̀ и҆зше́дъ молѧ́ше є҆го̀. |
|
29
|
29
|
| But he answered and said to his father, Lo, these many years do I serve thee, and I never transgressed a commandment of thine; and yet thou never gavest me a kid, that I might make merry with my friends: | Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿвѣща́въ речѐ ѻ҆тцꙋ̀: сѐ толи́кѡ лѣ́тъ рабо́таю тебѣ̀, и҆ николи́же за́пѡвѣди твоѧ̑ престꙋпи́хъ, и҆ мнѣ̀ николи́же да́лъ є҆сѝ козлѧ́те, да со дрꙋ̑ги свои́ми возвесели́лсѧ бы́хъ: |
|
30
|
30
|
| but when this thy son came, who hath devoured thy living with harlots, thou killedst for him the fatted calf. | є҆гда́ же сы́нъ тво́й се́й, и҆з̾ѧды́й твоѐ и҆мѣ́нїе съ любодѣ́йцами, прїи́де, закла́лъ є҆сѝ є҆мꙋ̀ телца̀ пито́маго. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And he said unto him, Son, thou art ever with me, and all that is mine is thine. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: ча́до, ты̀ всегда̀ со мно́ю є҆сѝ и҆ всѧ̑ моѧ̑ твоѧ̑ сꙋ́ть: |
|
32
|
32
|
| But it was meet to make merry and be glad: for this thy brother was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. | возвесели́тижесѧ и҆ возра́довати подоба́ше, ꙗ҆́кѡ бра́тъ тво́й се́й ме́ртвъ бѣ̀, и҆ ѡ҆живѐ: и҆ и҆зги́блъ бѣ̀, и҆ ѡ҆брѣ́тесѧ. |
|
Chapter 16
|
Глава́ ѕ҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he said also unto his disciples, There was a certain rich man, who had a steward; and the same was accused unto him that he was wasting his goods. | (Заⷱ҇ п҃.) Гл҃аше же ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй бѣ̀ бога́тъ, и҆̀же и҆мѧ́ше приста́вника: и҆ то́й ѡ҆клевета́нъ бы́сть къ немꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ расточа́етъ и҆мѣ̑нїѧ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And he called him, and said unto him, What is this that I hear of thee? render the account of thy stewardship; for thou canst be no longer steward. | И҆ пригласи́въ є҆го̀ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: что̀ сѐ слы́шꙋ ѡ҆ тебѣ̀; возда́ждь ѿвѣ́тъ ѡ҆ приставле́нїи домо́внѣмъ: не возмо́жеши бо ктомꙋ̀ до́мꙋ стро́ити. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And the steward said within himself, What shall I do, seeing that my lord taketh away the stewardship from me? I have not strength to dig; to beg I am ashamed. | Рече́ же въ себѣ̀ приста́вникъ до́мꙋ: что̀ сотворю̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ госпо́дь мо́й ѿе́млетъ строе́нїе до́мꙋ ѿ менє̀; копа́ти не могꙋ̀, проси́ти стыжꙋ́сѧ: |
|
4
|
4
|
| I am resolved what to do, that, when I am put out of the stewardship, they may receive me into their houses. | разꙋмѣ́хъ, что̀ сотворю̀, да є҆гда̀ ѿста́вленъ бꙋ́дꙋ ѿ строе́нїѧ до́мꙋ, прїи́мꙋтъ мѧ̀ въ до́мы своѧ̑. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And calling to him each one of his lord’s debtors, he said to the first, How much owest thou unto my lord? | И҆ призва́въ є҆ди́наго кого́ждо ѿ должни̑къ господи́на своегѡ̀, глаго́лаше пе́рвомꙋ: коли́цѣмъ до́лженъ є҆сѝ господи́нꙋ моемꙋ̀; |
|
6
|
6
|
| And he said, A hundred measures of oil. And he said unto him, Take thy bond, and sit down quickly and write fifty. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: сто̀ мѣ́ръ [ва́ть (ⷱ҇ⷱ҇ⷱ҇ⷱ҇ⷱ҇ⷱ҇, т. є҆. мѣ́ръ)] ма́сла. И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: прїимѝ писа́нїе твоѐ, и҆ сѣ́дъ ско́рѡ напишѝ пѧтьдесѧ́тъ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| Then said he to another, And how much owest thou? And he said, A hundred measures of wheat. And he saith unto him, Take thy bond, and write fourscore. | Пото́мъ же речѐ дрꙋго́мꙋ: ты́ же коли́цѣмъ до́лженъ є҆сѝ; Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: сто̀ мѣ́ръ пшени́цы. И҆ глаго́ла є҆мꙋ̀: прїимѝ писа́нїе твоѐ, и҆ напишѝ ѻ҆́смьдесѧтъ. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And his lord commended the unrighteous steward because he had done wisely: for the sons of this world are for their own generation wiser than the sons of the light. | И҆ похвалѝ госпо́дь до́мꙋ строи́телѧ непра́веднаго, ꙗ҆́кѡ мꙋ́дрѣ сотворѝ: ꙗ҆́кѡ сы́нове вѣ́ка сегѡ̀ мꙋдрѣ́йши па́че сынѡ́въ свѣ́та въ ро́дѣ свое́мъ сꙋ́ть. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And I say unto you, Make to yourselves friends by means of the mammon of unrighteousness; that, when ye shall fail, they may receive you into the eternal tabernacles. | И҆ а҆́зъ ва́мъ глаго́лю: сотвори́те себѣ̀ дрꙋ́ги ѿ мамѡ́ны непра́вды, да, є҆гда̀ ѡ҆скꙋдѣ́ете, прїи́мꙋтъ вы̀ въ вѣ̑чныѧ кро́вы. |
|
10
|
10
|
| He that is faithful in a very little is faithful also in much: and he that is unrighteous in a very little is unrighteous also in much. | (Заⷱ҇ п҃а҃.) Вѣ́рный въ ма́лѣ, и҆ во мно́зѣ вѣ́ренъ є҆́сть: и҆ непра́ведный въ ма́лѣ, и҆ во мно́зѣ непра́веденъ є҆́сть. |
|
11
|
11
|
| If therefore ye have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your trust the true riches? | А҆́ще оу҆̀бо въ непра́веднѣмъ и҆мѣ́нїи вѣ́рни не бы́сте, во и҆́стиннѣмъ кто̀ ва́мъ вѣ́рꙋ и҆́метъ; |
|
12
|
12
|
| And if ye have not been faithful in that which is another’s, who will give you that which is your own? | И҆ а҆́ще въ чꙋже́мъ вѣ́рни не бы́сте, ва́ше кто̀ ва́мъ да́стъ; |
|
13
|
13
|
| No servant can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other; or else he will hold to one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. | Никі́й же ра́бъ мо́жетъ двѣма̀ господи́нома рабо́тати: и҆́бо и҆лѝ є҆ди́наго возненави́дитъ, а҆ дрꙋга́го возлю́битъ: и҆лѝ є҆ди́нагѡ держи́тсѧ, ѡ҆ дрꙋзѣ́мъ же нерадѣ́ти на́чнетъ: не мо́жете бг҃ꙋ рабо́тати и҆ мамѡ́нѣ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And the Pharisees also, who were lovers of money, heard all these things; and they scoffed at him. | Слы́шахꙋ же сїѧ̑ всѧ̑ и҆ фарїсе́є, сребролю́бцы сꙋ́ще, рꙋга́хꙋсѧ є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he said unto them, Ye are they that justify yourselves in the sight of men; but God knoweth your hearts: for that which is exalted among men is an abomination in the sight of God. | И҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: (Заⷱ҇ п҃в҃.) вы̀ є҆стѐ ѡ҆правда́юще себѐ пред̾ человѣ̑ки, бг҃ъ же вѣ́сть сердца̀ ва̑ша: ꙗ҆́кѡ, є҆́же є҆́сть въ человѣ́цѣхъ высоко̀, ме́рзость є҆́сть пред̾ бг҃омъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| The law and the prophets were until John: from that time the gospel of the kingdom of God is preached, and every man entereth violently into it. | Зако́нъ и҆ прⷪ҇ро́цы до і҆ѡа́нна: ѿто́лѣ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе бл҃говѣствꙋ́етсѧ, и҆ всѧ́къ въ нѐ нꙋ́дитсѧ [съ нꙋ́ждею вхо́дитъ]. |
|
17
|
17
|
| But it is easier for heaven and earth to pass away, than for one tittle of the law to fall. | Оу҆до́бѣе же є҆́сть не́бꙋ и҆ землѝ прейтѝ, не́же ѿ зако́на є҆ди́ной чертѣ̀ поги́бнꙋти. |
|
18
|
18
|
| Everyone that putteth away his wife, and marrieth another, committeth adultery: and everyone that marrieth one that is put away from a husband committeth adultery. | Всѧ́къ пꙋща́ѧй женꙋ̀ свою̀ и҆ приводѧ̀ и҆́нꙋ, прелю́бы дѣ́етъ: и҆ женѧ́йсѧ пꙋще́ною ѿ мꙋ́жа, прелюбы̀ твори́тъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| Now there was a certain rich man, and he was clothed in purple and fine linen, faring sumptuously every day: | (Заⷱ҇ п҃г҃.) Человѣ́къ же нѣ́кїй бѣ̀ бога́тъ, и҆ ѡ҆блача́шесѧ въ порфѵ́рꙋ и҆ вѵ́ссонъ, веселѧ́сѧ на всѧ̑ дни̑ свѣ́тлѡ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| and there was a certain beggar named Lazarus, who was laid at his gate, full of sores, | Ни́щь же бѣ̀ нѣ́кто, и҆́менемъ ла́зарь, и҆́же лежа́ше пред̾ враты̀ є҆гѡ̀ гно́енъ |
|
21
|
21
|
| and desiring to be fed with the crumbs that fell from the rich man’s table; yea, even the dogs came and licked his sores. | и҆ жела́ше насы́титисѧ ѿ крꙋпи́цъ па́дающихъ ѿ трапе́зы бога́тагѡ: но и҆ псѝ приходѧ́ще ѡ҆близа́хꙋ гно́й є҆гѡ̀. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And it came to pass, that the beggar died, and that he was carried away by the angels into Abraham’s bosom: and the rich man also died, and was buried. | Бы́сть же оу҆мре́ти ни́щемꙋ, и҆ несе́нꙋ бы́ти а҆́гг҃лы на ло́но а҆враа́мле: оу҆́мре же и҆ бога́тый, и҆ погребо́ша є҆го̀. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And in Hades he lifted up his eyes, being in torments, and seeth Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom. | И҆ во а҆́дѣ возвѣ́дъ ѻ҆́чи своѝ, сы́й въ мꙋ́кахъ, оу҆зрѣ̀ а҆враа́ма и҆здале́ча, и҆ ла́зарѧ на ло́нѣ є҆гѡ̀: |
|
24
|
24
|
| And he cried and said, Father Abraham, have mercy on me, and send Lazarus, that he may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool my tongue; for I am in anguish in this flame. | и҆ то́й возгла́шь речѐ: ѻ҆́тче а҆враа́ме, поми́лꙋй мѧ̀, и҆ послѝ ла́зарѧ, да ѡ҆мо́читъ коне́цъ пе́рста своегѡ̀ въ водѣ̀ и҆ оу҆стꙋди́тъ ѧ҆зы́къ мо́й: ꙗ҆́кѡ стра́ждꙋ во пла́мени се́мъ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| But Abraham said, Son, remember that thou in thy lifetime receivedst thy good things, and Lazarus in like manner evil things: but now here he is comforted, and thou art in anguish. | Рече́ же а҆враа́мъ: ча́до, помѧнѝ, ꙗ҆́кѡ воспрїѧ́лъ є҆сѝ блага̑ѧ твоѧ̑ въ животѣ̀ твое́мъ, и҆ ла́зарь та́кожде ѕла̑ѧ: нн҃ѣ же здѣ̀ оу҆тѣша́етсѧ, ты́ же стра́ждеши: |
|
26
|
26
|
| And besides all this, between us and you there is a great gulf fixed, that they that would pass from hence to you may not be able; nor may they cross over from thence to us. | и҆ над̾ всѣ́ми си́ми междꙋ̀ на́ми и҆ ва́ми про́пасть вели́ка оу҆тверди́сѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ да хотѧ́щїи прейтѝ ѿсю́дꙋ къ ва́мъ не возмо́гꙋтъ, ни и҆̀же ѿтꙋ́дꙋ, къ на́мъ прехо́дѧтъ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And he said, I pray thee therefore, father, that thou wouldest send him to my father’s house; | Рече́ же: молю́ тѧ оу҆̀бо, ѻ҆́тче, да по́слеши є҆го̀ въ до́мъ ѻ҆тца̀ моегѡ̀: |
|
28
|
28
|
| for I have five brethren; that he may testify unto them, lest they also come into this place of torment. | и҆́мамъ бо пѧ́ть бра́тїй: ꙗ҆́кѡ да засвидѣ́телствꙋетъ и҆̀мъ, да не и҆ ті́и прїи́дꙋтъ на мѣ́сто сїѐ мꙋче́нїѧ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| Abraham saith unto him, They have Moses and the prophets; let them hear them. | Глаго́ла є҆мꙋ̀ а҆враа́мъ: и҆́мꙋтъ мѡѷсе́а и҆ прⷪ҇ро́ки: да послꙋ́шаютъ и҆̀хъ. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And he said, Nay, father Abraham: but if one go to them from the dead, they will repent. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: нѝ, ѻ҆́тче а҆враа́ме: но а҆́ще кто̀ ѿ ме́ртвыхъ и҆́детъ къ ни̑мъ, пока́ютсѧ. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And he said unto him, If they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, if one rise from the dead. | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀: а҆́ще мѡѷсе́а и҆ прⷪ҇ро́кѡвъ не послꙋ́шаютъ, и҆ а҆́ще кто̀ ѿ ме́ртвыхъ воскре́снетъ, не и҆́мꙋтъ вѣ́ры. |
|
Chapter 17
|
Глава́ з҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he said unto the disciples, It is impossible but that occasions of stumbling should come; but woe unto him, through whom they come! | Рече́ же ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: не возмо́жно є҆́сть не прїитѝ собла́знѡмъ, го́ре же, є҆гѡ́же ра́ди прихо́дѧтъ: |
|
2
|
2
|
| It were well for him if a millstone were hung about his neck, and he were thrown into the sea, rather than that he should cause one of these little ones to stumble. | оу҆́нѣе є҆мꙋ̀ бы́ло бы, а҆́ще жерно́въ ѻ҆се́лскїй ѡ҆блежа́лъ бы ѡ҆ вы́и є҆гѡ̀, и҆ вве́рженъ въ мо́ре, не́же да соблазни́тъ ѿ ма́лыхъ си́хъ є҆ди́наго. |
|
3
|
3
|
| Take heed to yourselves: and if thy brother sin against thee, rebuke him; and if he repent, forgive him. | (Заⷱ҇ п҃д҃.) Внемли́те себѣ̀. А҆́ще согрѣши́тъ къ тебѣ̀ бра́тъ тво́й, запретѝ є҆мꙋ̀: и҆ а҆́ще пока́етсѧ, ѡ҆ста́ви є҆мꙋ̀: |
|
4
|
4
|
| And if he sin against thee seven times in the day, and seven times in the day turn again, saying, I repent; thou shalt forgive him. | и҆ а҆́ще седми́щи на де́нь согрѣши́тъ къ тебѣ̀, и҆ седми́щи на де́нь ѡ҆брати́тсѧ, глаго́лѧ: ка́юсѧ: ѡ҆ста́ви є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And the apostles said unto the Lord, Increase our faith. | И҆ реко́ша а҆пⷭ҇ли гдⷭ҇еви: приложѝ на́мъ вѣ́рꙋ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And the Lord said, If ye had faith as a grain of mustard seed, ye would say unto this sycamine tree, Be thou rooted up, and be thou planted in the sea; and it would obey you. | Рече́ же гдⷭ҇ь: а҆́ще бы́сте и҆мѣ́ли вѣ́рꙋ ꙗ҆́кѡ зерно̀ горꙋ́шно, глаго́лали бы́сте оу҆́бѡ ꙗ҆́годичинѣ се́й: восто́ргнисѧ и҆ всади́сѧ въ мо́ре: и҆ послꙋ́шала бы ва́съ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| But who is there of you, having a servant plowing or keeping sheep, that will say straightaway, when he is come in from the field, Come and sit down to meat; | Кото́рый же ѿ ва́съ раба̀ и҆мѣ́ѧ ѡ҆рю́ща и҆лѝ пасꙋ́ща, и҆́же прише́дшꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ съ села̀ рече́тъ: а҆́бїе минꙋ́въ [прише́дъ] возлѧ́зи; |
|
8
|
8
|
| and will not rather say unto him, Make ready wherewith I may sup, and gird thyself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken; and afterward thou shalt eat and drink? | Но не рече́тъ ли є҆мꙋ̀: оу҆гото́вай, что̀ вечерѧ́ю, и҆ препоѧ́савсѧ слꙋжѝ мѝ, до́ндеже ꙗ҆́мъ и҆ пїю̀: и҆ пото́мъ ꙗ҆́си и҆ пїе́ши ты̀; |
|
9
|
9
|
| Doth he thank that servant because he did the things that were commanded? I think not. | Є҆да̀ и҆́мать хвалꙋ̀ [благодари́тъ] рабꙋ̀ томꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ сотворѝ повелѣ̑ннаѧ; не мню̀. |
|
10
|
10
|
| Even so ye also, when ye shall have done all the things that are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants; for we have done that which it was our duty to do. | Та́кѡ и҆ вы̀, є҆гда̀ сотворитѐ всѧ̑ повелѣ̑ннаѧ ва́мъ, глаго́лите, ꙗ҆́кѡ рабѝ неключи́ми є҆смы̀: ꙗ҆́кѡ, є҆́же до́лжни бѣ́хомъ сотвори́ти, сотвори́хомъ. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And it came to pass, as he was on the way to Jerusalem, that he was passing along the borders of Samaria and Galilee. | И҆ бы́сть и҆дꙋ́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, и҆ то́й прохожда́ше междꙋ̀ сама́рїею и҆ галїле́ею. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And as he entered into a certain village, there met him ten men that were lepers, who stood afar off: | (Заⷱ҇ п҃е҃.) Входѧ́щꙋ же є҆мꙋ̀ въ нѣ́кꙋю ве́сь, срѣто́ша є҆го̀ де́сѧть прокаже́нныхъ мꙋже́й, и҆̀же ста́ша и҆здале́ча: |
|
13
|
13
|
| and they lifted up their voices, saying, Jesus, Master, have mercy on us. | и҆ ті́и вознесо́ша гла́съ, глаго́люще: і҆и҃се наста́вниче, поми́лꙋй ны̀. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And when he saw them, he said unto them, Go and show yourselves unto the priests. And it came to pass, as they went, they were cleansed. | И҆ ви́дѣвъ речѐ и҆̀мъ: ше́дше покажи́тесѧ свѧще́нникѡмъ. И҆ бы́сть и҆дꙋ́щымъ и҆̀мъ, ѡ҆чи́стишасѧ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And one of them, when he saw that he was healed, turned back, with a loud voice glorifying God; | Є҆ди́нъ же ѿ ни́хъ, ви́дѣвъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆сцѣлѣ̀, возврати́сѧ, со гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ сла́вѧ бг҃а, |
|
16
|
16
|
| and he fell upon his face at his feet, giving him thanks: and he was a Samaritan. | и҆ падѐ ни́цъ при ногꙋ̀ є҆гѡ̀, хвалꙋ̀ є҆мꙋ̀ воздаѧ̀: и҆ то́й бѣ̀ самарѧни́нъ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And Jesus answered and said, Were not the ten cleansed? but where are the nine? | Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆и҃съ речѐ: не де́сѧть ли ѡ҆чи́стишасѧ; да де́вѧть гдѣ̀; |
|
18
|
18
|
| Were there none found that returned to give glory to God, save this stranger? | ка́кѡ не ѡ҆брѣто́шасѧ возвра́щшесѧ да́ти сла́вꙋ бг҃ꙋ, то́кмѡ и҆ноплеме́нникъ се́й; |
|
19
|
19
|
| And he said unto him, Arise, and go thy way: thy faith hath made thee whole. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: воста́въ и҆дѝ: вѣ́ра твоѧ̀ сп҃се́ тѧ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And being asked by the Pharisees, when the kingdom of God cometh, he answered them and said, The kingdom of God cometh not with observation: | (Заⷱ҇ п҃ѕ҃.) Вопроше́нъ же бы́въ ѿ фарїсє́й, когда̀ прїи́детъ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе, ѿвѣща́въ и҆̀мъ речѐ: не прїи́детъ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе съ соблюде́нїемъ [со оу҆смотре́нїемъ]: |
|
21
|
21
|
| neither shall they say, Lo, here! or, Lo, there! for lo, the kingdom of God is within you. | нижѐ рекꙋ́тъ: сѐ здѣ̀, и҆лѝ: ѻ҆́ндѣ. Се́ бо црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе внꙋ́трь ва́съ є҆́сть. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And he said unto the disciples, The days will come, when ye shall desire to see one of the days of the Son of man, and ye shall not see it. | Рече́ же ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ (свои̑мъ): прїи́дꙋтъ дні́е, є҆гда̀ вожделѣ́ете є҆ди́нагѡ днѐ сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческагѡ ви́дѣти, и҆ не оу҆́зрите. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And they shall say to you, Lo, here! or, Lo, there! go not away, nor follow after them: | И҆ рекꙋ́тъ ва́мъ: сѐ здѣ̀, и҆лѝ: сѐ, ѻ҆́ндѣ: не и҆зы́дите, ни пожени́те. |
|
24
|
24
|
| for as the lightning, that lighteneth out of the one part under heaven, shineth unto the other part under heaven; so shall the Son of man be in his day. | Ꙗ҆́кѡ бо мо́лнїѧ блиста́ющисѧ ѿ поднебе́сныѧ на поднебе́снѣй свѣ́титсѧ: та́кѡ бꙋ́детъ сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй въ де́нь сво́й. |
|
25
|
25
|
| But first must he suffer many things and be rejected of this generation. | Пре́жде же подоба́етъ є҆мꙋ̀ мно́гѡ пострада́ти и҆ и҆скꙋше́нꙋ [ѿве́рженꙋ] бы́ти ѿ ро́да сегѡ̀. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And as it came to pass in the days of Noah, even so shall it be also in the days of the Son of man. | (Заⷱ҇ п҃з҃.) И҆ ꙗ҆́коже бы́сть во дни̑ нѡ́євы, та́кѡ бꙋ́детъ и҆ во дни̑ сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческа: |
|
27
|
27
|
| They ate, they drank, they married, they were given in marriage, until the day that Noah entered into the ark, and the flood came, and destroyed them all. | ꙗ҆дѧ́хꙋ, пїѧ́хꙋ, женѧ́хꙋсѧ, посѧга́хꙋ, до негѡ́же днѐ вни́де нѡ́е въ ковче́гъ: и҆ прїи́де пото́пъ, и҆ погꙋбѝ всѧ̑. |
|
28
|
28
|
| Likewise also as it came to pass in the days of Lot; they ate, they drank, they bought, they sold, they planted, they built; | Та́кожде и҆ ꙗ҆́коже бы́сть во дни̑ лѡ́тѡвы: ꙗ҆дѧ́хꙋ, пїѧ́хꙋ, кꙋпова́хꙋ, продаѧ́хꙋ, сажда́хꙋ, зда́хꙋ: |
|
29
|
29
|
| but in the day that Lot went out from Sodom it rained fire and brimstone from heaven, and destroyed them all: | во́ньже де́нь и҆зы́де лѡ́тъ ѿ содо́млѧнъ, ѡ҆дождѝ ка́мыкъ горѧ́щь и҆ ѻ҆́гнь съ небесѐ, и҆ погꙋбѝ всѧ̑. |
|
30
|
30
|
| after the same manner shall it be in the day that the Son of man is revealed. | По томꙋ́же бꙋ́детъ и҆ въ де́нь, во́ньже сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй ꙗ҆ви́тсѧ. |
|
31
|
31
|
| In that day, he that shall be on the housetop, and his goods in the house, let him not go down to take them away: and let him that is in the field likewise not return back. | Въ то́й де́нь, и҆́же бꙋ́детъ на кро́вѣ, и҆ сосꙋ́ди є҆гѡ̀ въ домꙋ̀, да не сла́зитъ взѧ́ти и҆́хъ: и҆ и҆́же на селѣ̀, та́кожде да не возврати́тсѧ вспѧ́ть: |
|
32
|
32
|
| Remember Lot’s wife. | помина́йте женꙋ̀ лѡ́товꙋ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| Whosoever shall seek to save his life shall lose it: and whosoever shall lose it shall preserve it. | И҆́же а҆́ще взы́щетъ дꙋ́шꙋ свою̀ спастѝ, погꙋби́тъ ю҆̀: и҆ и҆́же а҆́ще погꙋби́тъ ю҆̀, живи́тъ ю҆̀. |
|
34
|
34
|
| I say unto you, In that night there shall be two men on one bed; one shall be taken, and the other shall be left. | Гл҃ю ва́мъ: въ тꙋ̀ но́щь бꙋ́дета два̀ на ѻ҆дрѣ̀ є҆ди́номъ: є҆ди́нъ пое́млетсѧ, а҆ дрꙋгі́й ѡ҆ставлѧ́етсѧ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| Two women shall be grinding together; one shall be taken, and the other shall be left. | Бꙋ́детѣ двѣ̀ вкꙋ́пѣ ме́лющѣ: є҆ди́на пое́млетсѧ, а҆ дрꙋга́ѧ ѡ҆ставлѧ́етсѧ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And answering, they say unto him, Where, Lord? And he said unto them, Where the body is, thither will the eagles be gathered together. | И҆ ѿвѣща́вше глаго́лаша є҆мꙋ̀: гдѣ̀, гдⷭ҇и; Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: и҆дѣ́же тѣ́ло, та́мѡ соберꙋ́тсѧ и҆ ѻ҆рлѝ. |
|
Chapter 18
|
Глава́ и҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he spake also a parable unto them to the end that they ought always to pray, and not to faint; | Гл҃аше же и҆ при́тчꙋ къ ни̑мъ, ка́кѡ подоба́етъ всегда̀ моли́тисѧ и҆ не стꙋжа́ти (сѝ), |
|
2
|
2
|
| saying, There was in a city a judge, who feared not God, and regarded not man: | гл҃ѧ: (Заⷱ҇ п҃и҃.) сꙋдїѧ̀ бѣ̀ нѣ́кїй въ нѣ́коемъ гра́дѣ, бг҃а не боѧ́сѧ и҆ человѣ̑къ не срамлѧ́ѧсѧ. |
|
3
|
3
|
| and there was a widow in that city; and she came oft unto him, saying, Avenge me of mine adversary. | Вдова́ же нѣ́каѧ бѣ̀ во гра́дѣ то́мъ: и҆ прихожда́ше къ немꙋ̀, глаго́лющи: ѿмстѝ менє̀ ѿ сопе́рника моегѡ̀. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And he would not for a while: but afterward he said within himself, Though I fear not God, and regard not man; | И҆ не хотѧ́ше на до́лзѣ вре́мени. Послѣди́ же речѐ въ себѣ̀: а҆́ще и҆ бг҃а не бою́сѧ, и҆ человѣ̑къ не срамлѧ́юсѧ: |
|
5
|
5
|
| yet because this widow troubleth me, I will avenge her, lest she wear me out by her continual coming. | но занѐ твори́тъ мѝ трꙋды̀ вдови́ца сїѧ̀, ѿмщꙋ̀ є҆ѧ̀: да не до конца̀ приходѧ́щи застои́тъ [трꙋди́тъ] менѐ. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And the Lord said, Hear what the unrighteous judge saith. | Рече́ же гдⷭ҇ь: слы́шите, что̀ сꙋдїѧ̀ непра́вды глаго́летъ; |
|
7
|
7
|
| And shall not God avenge his elect, that cry to him day and night, though he is long-suffering over them? | Бг҃ъ же не и҆́мать ли сотвори́ти ѿмще́нїе и҆збра́нныхъ свои́хъ, вопїю́щихъ къ немꙋ̀ де́нь и҆ но́щь, и҆ долготерпѧ̀ ѡ҆ ни́хъ; |
|
8
|
8
|
| I say unto you, that he will avenge them speedily. Nevertheless, when the Son of man cometh, shall he find faith on the earth? | гл҃ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ сотвори́тъ ѿмще́нїе и҆́хъ вско́рѣ. Ѻ҆ба́че сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй прише́дъ оу҆́бѡ ѡ҆брѧ́щетъ ли (сѝ) вѣ́рꙋ на землѝ; |
|
9
|
9
|
| And he spake this parable unto certain who trusted in themselves that they were righteous, and set all others at nought: | Рече́ же и҆ ко дрꙋги̑мъ оу҆пова́ющымъ собо́ю, ꙗ҆́кѡ сꙋ́ть пра́вєдницы, и҆ оу҆ничижа́ющымъ про́чихъ, при́тчꙋ сїю̀: |
|
10
|
10
|
| Two men went up into the temple to pray; the one a Pharisee, and the other a publican. | (Заⷱ҇ п҃ѳ҃.) человѣ̑ка два̀ внидо́ста въ це́рковь помоли́тисѧ: є҆ди́нъ фарїсе́й, а҆ дрꙋгі́й мыта́рь. |
|
11
|
11
|
| The Pharisee stood by himself and prayed thus, God, I thank thee, that I am not as the rest of men, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this publican. | Фарїсе́й же ста́въ, си́це въ себѣ̀ молѧ́шесѧ: бж҃е, хвалꙋ̀ тебѣ̀ воздаю̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ нѣ́смь ꙗ҆́коже про́чїи человѣ́цы, хи́щницы, непра́вєдницы, прелюбодѣ́є, и҆лѝ ꙗ҆́коже се́й мыта́рь: |
|
12
|
12
|
| I fast twice in the week; I give tithes of all that I get. | пощꙋ́сѧ двакра́ты въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ, десѧти́нꙋ даю̀ всегѡ̀ є҆ли́кѡ притѧжꙋ̀. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as his eyes unto heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God, be thou merciful to me a sinner. | Мыта́рь же и҆здале́ча стоѧ̀, не хотѧ́ше ни ѻ҆́чїю возвестѝ на не́бо: но бїѧ́ше пє́рси своѧ̑, глаго́лѧ: бж҃е, ми́лостивъ бꙋ́ди мнѣ̀ грѣ́шникꙋ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| I say unto you, This man went down to his house justified rather than the other: for everyone that exalteth himself shall be humbled; but he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. | Глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ сни́де се́й ѡ҆правда́нъ въ до́мъ сво́й па́че ѻ҆́нагѡ: ꙗ҆́кѡ всѧ́къ возносѧ́йсѧ смири́тсѧ, смирѧ́ѧй же себѐ вознесе́тсѧ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And they were bringing unto him also their babes, that he should touch them: but when the disciples saw it, they rebuked them. | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃.) Приноша́хꙋ же къ немꙋ̀ и҆ младе́нцы, да и҆́хъ ко́снетсѧ: ви́дѣвше же оу҆чн҃цы̀ запрети́ша и҆̀мъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| But Jesus calling them unto him, said, Suffer the little children to come unto me, and forbid them not: for to such belongeth the kingdom of God. | І҆и҃съ же призва́въ и҆̀хъ, глаго́ла: ѡ҆ста́вите дѣте́й приходи́ти ко мнѣ̀ и҆ не брани́те и҆̀мъ: таковы́хъ бо є҆́сть црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
17
|
17
|
| Verily I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, he shall in no wise enter therein. | А҆ми́нь бо глаго́лю ва́мъ: и҆́же а҆́ще не прїи́метъ црⷭ҇твїѧ бж҃їѧ ꙗ҆́кѡ ѻ҆троча̀, не и҆́мать вни́ти въ нѐ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And a certain ruler asked him, saying, Good Teacher, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃а҃.) И҆ вопросѝ є҆го̀ нѣ́кїй кнѧ́зь, глаго́лѧ: оу҆чт҃лю бл҃гі́й, что̀ сотвори́въ, живо́тъ вѣ́чный наслѣ́дствꙋю; |
|
19
|
19
|
| And Jesus said unto him, Why callest thou me good? none is good, save one, even God. | Рече́ же є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: что́ мѧ глаго́леши бл҃га, никто́же бл҃гъ, то́кмѡ є҆ди́нъ бг҃ъ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| Thou knowest the commandments, Do not commit adultery, Do not kill, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Honor thy father and thy mother. | За́пѡвѣди вѣ́си: не прелю́бы творѝ: не оу҆бі́й: не оу҆крадѝ: не лжесвидѣ́телствꙋй: чтѝ ѻ҆тца̀ твоего̀ и҆ ма́терь твою̀. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And he said, All these things have I observed from my youth up. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: всѧ̑ сїѧ̑ сохрани́хъ ѿ ю҆́ности моеѧ̀. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And when Jesus heard these things, he said unto him, One thing thou lackest yet: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow me. | Слы́шавъ же сїѧ̑, і҆и҃съ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: є҆щѐ є҆ди́нагѡ не доконча́лъ є҆сѝ: всѧ̑, є҆ли́ка и҆́маши, прода́ждь, и҆ разда́й ни́щымъ: и҆ и҆мѣ́ти и҆́маши сокро́вище на нб҃сѝ: и҆ грѧдѝ вослѣ́дъ менє̀. |
|
23
|
23
|
| But when he heard these things, he became exceeding sorrowful; for he was very rich. | Ѻ҆́нъ же слы́шавъ сїѐ, приско́рбенъ бы́сть: бѣ́ бо бога́тъ ѕѣлѡ̀. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And when Jesus saw that he was very sorrowful, he said, How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God! | Ви́дѣвъ же є҆го̀ і҆и҃съ приско́рбна бы́вша, речѐ: ка́кѡ не оу҆до́бь и҆мꙋ́щїи бога́тство въ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе вни́дꙋтъ: |
|
25
|
25
|
| For it is easier for a camel to enter in through a needle’s eye, than for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God. | оу҆до́бѣе бо є҆́сть велбꙋ́дꙋ сквозѣ̀ и҆глинѣ̑ оу҆́шы проитѝ, не́же бога́тꙋ въ црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе вни́ти. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And they that heard it said, Then who can be saved? | Рѣ́ша же слы́шавшїи: то̀ кто̀ мо́жетъ сп҃се́нъ бы́ти; |
|
27
|
27
|
| But he said, The things which are impossible with men are possible with God. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: невозмѡ́жнаѧ оу҆ человѣ̑къ возмѡ́жна сꙋ́ть оу҆ бг҃а. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And Peter said, Lo, we have left all, and followed thee. | Рече́ же пе́тръ: сѐ мы̀ ѡ҆ста́вихомъ всѧ̑ и҆ по тебѣ̀ и҆до́хомъ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And he said unto them, Verily I say unto you, There is no man that hath left house, or parents, or brethren, or wife, or children, for the kingdom of God’s sake, | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: а҆ми́нь глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ никто́же є҆́сть, и҆́же ѡ҆ста́витъ до́мъ, и҆лѝ роди́тєли, и҆лѝ бра́тїю, и҆лѝ сє́стры, и҆лѝ женꙋ̀, и҆лѝ ча́да, црⷭ҇твїѧ ра́ди бж҃їѧ, |
|
30
|
30
|
| who shall not receive manifold more in this time, and in the world to come eternal life. | и҆́же не прїи́метъ мно́жицею во вре́мѧ сїѐ, и҆ въ вѣ́къ грѧдꙋ́щїй живо́тъ вѣ́чный. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And he took unto him the twelve, and said unto them, Behold, we go up to Jerusalem, and all the things that are written through the prophets shall be accomplished unto the Son of man. | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃в҃.) Пое́мь же ѻ҆бана́десѧте оу҆чн҃кѝ своѧ̑, речѐ къ ни̑мъ; сѐ восхо́димъ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, и҆ сконча́ютсѧ всѧ̑ пи̑саннаѧ прⷪ҇рѡ́ки ѡ҆ сн҃ѣ чл҃вѣ́честѣ: |
|
32
|
32
|
| For he shall be delivered up unto the Gentiles, and shall be mocked, and shamefully treated, and spit upon: | предадѧ́тъ бо є҆го̀ ꙗ҆зы́кѡмъ, и҆ порꙋга́ютсѧ є҆мꙋ̀, и҆ оу҆корѧ́тъ є҆го̀, и҆ ѡ҆плюю́тъ є҆го̀, |
|
33
|
33
|
| and they shall scourge and kill him: and the third day he shall rise again. | и҆ би́вше оу҆бїю́тъ є҆го̀: и҆ въ тре́тїй де́нь воскре́снетъ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And they understood none of these things; and this saying was hidden from them, and they perceived not the things that were said. | И҆ ті́и ничесѡ́же ѿ си́хъ разꙋмѣ́ша: и҆ бѣ̀ глаго́лъ се́й сокрове́нъ ѿ ни́хъ, и҆ не разꙋмѣва́хꙋ глаго́лемыхъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And it came to pass, as he drew nigh unto Jericho, a certain blind man sat by the wayside begging: | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃г҃.) Бы́сть же є҆гда̀ прибли́жишасѧ во і҆ерїхѡ́нъ, слѣпе́цъ нѣ́кїй сѣдѧ́ше при пꙋтѝ просѧ̀: |
|
36
|
36
|
| and hearing a multitude going by, he inquired what this meant. | слы́шавъ же наро́дъ мимоходѧ́щь, вопроша́ше: что̀ оу҆́бѡ є҆́сть сѐ; |
|
37
|
37
|
| And they told him, that Jesus of Nazareth passeth by. | Повѣ́даша же є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ і҆и҃съ назарѧни́нъ мимохо́дитъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And he cried, saying, Jesus, thou son of David, have mercy on me. | И҆ возопѝ, глаго́лѧ: і҆и҃се сн҃е дв҃довъ, поми́лꙋй мѧ̀. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And they that went before rebuked him, that he should hold his peace: but he cried out the more a great deal, Thou son of David, have mercy on me. | И҆ пред̾идꙋ́щїи преща́хꙋ є҆мꙋ̀, да оу҆молчи́тъ: ѻ҆́нъ же па́че мно́жае вопїѧ́ше: сн҃е дв҃довъ, поми́лꙋй мѧ̀. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And Jesus stood, and commanded him to be brought unto him: and when he was come near, he asked him, | Ста́въ же і҆и҃съ повелѣ̀ привестѝ є҆го̀ къ себѣ̀: прибли́жшꙋсѧ же є҆мꙋ̀ къ немꙋ̀, вопросѝ є҆го̀, |
|
41
|
41
|
| saying, What wilt thou that I should do unto thee? And he said, Lord, that I may receive my sight. | глаго́лѧ: что̀ хо́щеши, да тѝ сотворю̀; Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: гдⷭ҇и, да прозрю̀. |
|
42
|
42
|
| And Jesus said unto him, Receive thy sight: thy faith hath made thee whole. | І҆и҃съ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: прозрѝ: вѣ́ра твоѧ̀ сп҃се́ тѧ. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And immediately he received his sight, and followed him, glorifying God: and all the people, when they saw it, gave praise unto God. | И҆ а҆́бїе прозрѣ̀, и҆ в̾слѣ́дъ є҆гѡ̀ и҆дѧ́ше, сла́вѧ бг҃а. И҆ всѝ лю́дїе ви́дѣвше возда́ша хвалꙋ̀ бг҃ови. |
|
Chapter 19
|
Глава́ ѳ҃і
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he entered and was passing through Jericho. | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃д҃.) И҆ вше́дъ прохожда́ше і҆ерїхѡ́нъ. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And behold, a man called by name Zacchaeus; and he was a chief publican, and he was rich. | И҆ сѐ мꙋ́жъ нарица́емый закхе́й, и҆ се́й бѣ̀ ста́рѣй мытарє́мъ, и҆ то́й бѣ̀ бога́тъ: |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he sought to see Jesus who he was; and could not for the crowd, because he was little of stature. | и҆ и҆ска́ше ви́дѣти і҆и҃са, кто̀ є҆́сть, и҆ не можа́ше ѿ наро́да, ꙗ҆́кѡ во́зрастомъ ма́лъ бѣ̀: |
|
4
|
4
|
| And he ran on before, and climbed up into a sycamore tree to see him: for he was to pass that way. | и҆ предите́къ, возлѣ́зе на ꙗ҆́годичинꙋ, да ви́дитъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ хотѧ́ше ми́мѡ є҆ѧ̀ проитѝ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And when Jesus came to the place, he looked up, and saw him, and said unto him, Zacchaeus, make haste, and come down; for today I must abide at thy house. | И҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ прїи́де на мѣ́сто, воззрѣ́въ і҆и҃съ ви́дѣ є҆го̀, и҆ речѐ къ немꙋ̀: закхе́е, потща́всѧ слѣ́зи: дне́сь бо въ домꙋ̀ твое́мъ подоба́етъ мѝ бы́ти. |
|
6
|
6
|
| And he made haste, and came down, and received him joyfully. | И҆ потща́всѧ слѣ́зе, и҆ прїѧ́тъ є҆го̀ ра́дꙋѧсѧ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And when they saw it, they all murmured, saying, He is gone in to lodge with a man that is a sinner. | И҆ ви́дѣвше всѝ ропта́хꙋ, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ ко грѣ́шнꙋ мꙋ́жꙋ вни́де вита́ти. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And Zacchaeus stood, and said unto the Lord, Behold, Lord, the half of my goods I give to the poor; and if I have wrongfully exacted aught of any man, I restore fourfold. | Ста́въ же закхе́й речѐ ко гдⷭ҇ꙋ: сѐ по́лъ и҆мѣ́нїѧ моегѡ̀, гдⷭ҇и, да́мъ ни́щымъ: и҆ а҆́ще кого̀ чи́мъ ѡ҆би́дѣхъ, возвращꙋ̀ четвери́цею. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And Jesus said unto him, Today is salvation come to this house, forasmuch as he also is a son of Abraham. | Рече́ же къ немꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: ꙗ҆́кѡ дне́сь спⷭ҇нїе до́мꙋ семꙋ̀ бы́сть, занѐ и҆ се́й сы́нъ а҆враа́мль є҆́сть: |
|
10
|
10
|
| For the Son of man came to seek and to save that which was lost. | прїи́де бо сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́чь взыска́ти и҆ спⷭ҇тѝ поги́бшаго. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And as they heard these things, he added and spake a parable, because he was nigh to Jerusalem, and because they supposed that the kingdom of God was immediately to appear. | Слы́шащымъ же и҆̀мъ сїѧ̑, прило́жь речѐ при́тчꙋ, занѐ бли́з̾ є҆мꙋ̀ бы́ти і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ма, и҆ мнѧ́хꙋ, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́бїе црⷭ҇тво бж҃їе хо́щетъ ꙗ҆ви́тисѧ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| He said therefore, A certain nobleman went into a far country, to receive for himself a kingdom, and to return. | Речѐ оу҆̀бо: (Заⷱ҇ ч҃е҃.) человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй добра̀ ро́да и҆́де на странꙋ̀ дале́че, прїѧ́ти себѣ̀ ца́рство и҆ возврати́тисѧ. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And he called ten servants of his, and gave them ten pounds, and said unto them, Trade ye herewith till I come. | Призва́въ же де́сѧть ра̑бъ свои́хъ, дадѐ и҆́мъ де́сѧть мна̑съ, и҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: кꙋ́плю дѣ́йте, до́ндеже прїидꙋ̀. |
|
14
|
14
|
| But his citizens hated him, and sent an embassage after him, saying, We will not that this man reign over us. | И҆ гра́ждане є҆гѡ̀ ненави́дѧхꙋ є҆го̀, и҆ посла́ша послы̀ в̾слѣ́дъ є҆гѡ̀, глаго́люще: не хо́щемъ семꙋ̀, да ца́рствꙋетъ над̾ на́ми. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And it came to pass, when he was come back again, having received the kingdom, that he commanded these servants, unto whom he had given the money, to be called to him, that he might know who had gained what by trading. | И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ возврати́сѧ прїи́мъ ца́рство, речѐ пригласи́ти рабы̑ ты̑ѧ, и҆̀мже дадѐ сребро̀, да оу҆вѣ́сть, каковꙋ̀ кꙋ́плю сꙋ́ть сотвори́ли. |
|
16
|
16
|
| And the first came before him, saying, Lord, thy pound hath made ten pounds more. | Прїи́де же пе́рвый, глаго́лѧ: го́споди, мна́съ твоѧ̀ придѣ́ла де́сѧть мна̑съ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And he said unto him, Well done, thou good servant: because thou wast found faithful in a very little, have thou authority over ten cities. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: бла́гѡ, ра́бе до́брый: ꙗ҆́кѡ ѡ҆ ма́лѣ вѣ́ренъ бы́лъ є҆сѝ, бꙋ́ди ѡ҆́бласть и҆мѣ́ѧ над̾ десѧтїю̀ градѡ́въ. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And the second came, saying, Lord, thy pound hath made five pounds. | И҆ прїи́де вторы́й, глаго́лѧ: го́споди, мна́съ твоѧ̀ сотворѝ пѧ́ть мна̑съ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And he said unto him also, Be thou also over five cities. | Рече́ же и҆ томꙋ̀: и҆ ты̀ бꙋ́ди над̾ пѧтїю̀ градѡ́въ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And another came, saying, Lord, behold, here is thy pound, which I kept laid up in a napkin: | И҆ дрꙋгі́й прїи́де, глаго́лѧ: го́споди, сѐ мна́съ твоѧ̀, ю҆́же и҆мѣ́хъ положе́нꙋ во оу҆брꙋ́сѣ: |
|
21
|
21
|
| for I feared thee, because thou art an austere man: thou takest up that which thou laidst not down, and reapest that which thou didst not sow. | боѧ́хсѧ бо тебє̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ человѣ́къ ꙗ҆́ръ є҆сѝ, взе́млеши, є҆гѡ́же не положи́лъ є҆сѝ, и҆ жне́ши, є҆гѡ́же не сѣ́ѧлъ є҆сѝ. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And he saith unto him, Out of thine own mouth will I judge thee, thou wicked servant. Thou knewest that I am an austere man, taking up that which I laid not down, and reaping that which I did not sow; | Глаго́ла же є҆мꙋ̀: ѿ оу҆́стъ твои́хъ сꙋждꙋ́ ти, лꙋка́вый ра́бе: вѣ́дѣлъ є҆сѝ, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́зъ человѣ́къ ꙗ҆́ръ є҆́смь, взе́млю, є҆гѡ́же не положи́хъ, и҆ жнꙋ̀, є҆гѡ́же не сѣ́ѧхъ: |
|
23
|
23
|
| then wherefore gavest thou not my money into a bank, and I at my coming should have required it with interest? | и҆ почто̀ не вда́лъ є҆сѝ моегѡ̀ сребра̀ кꙋпцє́мъ, и҆ а҆́зъ прише́дъ съ ли́хвою и҆стѧза́лъ бы́хъ є҆̀; |
|
24
|
24
|
| And he said unto them that stood by, Take away from him the pound, and give it unto him that hath the ten pounds. | И҆ предстоѧ́щымъ речѐ: возми́те ѿ негѡ̀ мна́съ, и҆ дади́те и҆мꙋ́щемꙋ де́сѧть мна̑съ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And they said unto him, Lord, he hath ten pounds. | И҆ рѣ́ша є҆мꙋ̀: го́споди, и҆́мать де́сѧть мна̑съ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| For I say unto you, that unto everyone that hath shall be given; but from him that hath not, even that which he hath shall be taken away from him. | Глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ всѧ́комꙋ и҆мꙋ́щемꙋ да́стсѧ: а҆ ѿ неимꙋ́щагѡ, и҆ є҆́же и҆́мать, ѿи́метсѧ ѿ негѡ̀: |
|
27
|
27
|
| But those mine enemies, that would not that I should reign over them, bring hither, and slay before me. | ѻ҆ба́че врагѝ моѧ̑ ѡ҆́ны, и҆̀же не восхотѣ́ша менѐ, да ца́рь бы́хъ бы́лъ над̾ ни́ми, приведи́те сѣ́мѡ и҆ и҆зсѣцы́те предо мно́ю. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And when he had thus spoken, he went on before, going up to Jerusalem. | И҆ сїѧ̑ ре́къ, и҆дѧ́ше предѝ, восходѧ̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And it came to pass, when he drew nigh unto Bethsphage and Bethany, at the mount that is called Olivet, he sent two of his disciples, | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃ѕ҃.) И҆ бы́сть ꙗ҆́кѡ прибли́жисѧ въ виѳсфагі́ю и҆ виѳа́нїю, къ горѣ̀ нарица́емѣй є҆леѡ́нъ, посла̀ два̀ оу҆чн҃къ свои́хъ, |
|
30
|
30
|
| saying, Go your way into the village over against you; in which as ye enter ye shall find a colt tied, whereon no man ever yet sat: loose him, and bring him. | гл҃ѧ: и҆ди́та въ прѧ́мнꙋю ве́сь: (и҆) въ ню́же входѧ̑ща ѡ҆брѧ́щета жребѧ̀ привѧ́зано, на не́же никто́же николи́же ѿ человѣ̑къ всѣ́де: ѿрѣ̑шша є҆̀ приведи́та. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And if anyone ask you, Why do ye loose him? thus shall ye say unto him, The Lord hath need of him. | И҆ а҆́ще кто̀ вы̀ вопроша́етъ: почто̀ ѿрѣша́ета, си́це рцы́та є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ гдⷭ҇ь є҆гѡ̀ тре́бꙋетъ. |
|
32
|
32
|
| And they that were sent went away, and found even as he had said unto them. | Шє́дша же пѡ́сланнаѧ ѡ҆брѣто́ста, ꙗ҆́коже речѐ и҆́ма. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And as they were loosing the colt, the owners thereof said unto them, Why loose ye the colt? | Ѿрѣша́ющема же и҆́ма жребѧ̀, реко́ша госпо́дїе є҆гѡ̀ къ ни́ма: что̀ ѿрѣша́ета жребѧ̀; |
|
34
|
34
|
| And they said, The Lord hath need of him. | Ѡ҆́на же реко́ста, ꙗ҆́кѡ гдⷭ҇ь є҆гѡ̀ тре́бꙋетъ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And they brought him to Jesus: and they threw their garments upon the colt, and set Jesus thereon. | И҆ приведо́ста є҆̀ ко і҆и҃сови: и҆ возве́ргше ри̑зы своѧ̑ на жребѧ̀, всади́ша і҆и҃са. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And as he went, they spread their garments in the way. | И҆дꙋ́щꙋ же є҆мꙋ̀, постила́хꙋ ри̑зы своѧ̑ по пꙋтѝ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And as he was now drawing nigh, even at the descent of the mount of Olives, the whole multitude of the disciples began to rejoice and praise God with a loud voice for all the mighty works which they had seen; | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃з҃.) Приближа́ющꙋжесѧ є҆мꙋ̀ оу҆жѐ (а҆́бїе) къ низхожде́нїю горѣ̀ є҆леѡ́нстѣй, нача́ша всѐ мно́жество оу҆чени̑къ ра́дꙋющесѧ хвали́ти бг҃а гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ си́лахъ, ꙗ҆́же ви́дѣша, |
|
38
|
38
|
| saying, Blessed is the King that cometh in the name of the Lord: Peace in heaven, and glory in the highest. | глаго́люще: блгⷭ҇ве́нъ грѧды́й цр҃ь во и҆́мѧ гдⷭ҇не: ми́ръ на нб҃сѝ, и҆ сла́ва въ вы́шнихъ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And some of the Pharisees from the multitude said unto him, Teacher, rebuke thy disciples. | И҆ нѣ́цыи фарїсе́є ѿ наро́да рѣ́ша къ немꙋ̀: оу҆чт҃лю, запретѝ оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ твои̑мъ. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And he answered and said unto them, I tell you that, if these shall hold their peace, the stones will cry out. | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ речѐ и҆̀мъ: глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ, а҆́ще сі́и оу҆молча́тъ, ка́менїе возопїе́тъ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And when he drew nigh, he saw the city and wept over it, | И҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ прибли́жисѧ, ви́дѣвъ гра́дъ, пла́касѧ ѡ҆ не́мъ, |
|
42
|
42
|
| saying, If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong unto thy peace! but now they are hidden from thine eyes. | глаго́лѧ: ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́ще бы разꙋмѣ́лъ и҆ ты̀, въ де́нь се́й тво́й, є҆́же къ смире́нїю [къ ми́рꙋ] твоемꙋ̀: нн҃ѣ же скры́сѧ ѿ ѻ҆́чїю твоє́ю: |
|
43
|
43
|
| For the days shall come upon thee, when thine enemies shall cast up a bank about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, | ꙗ҆́кѡ прїи́дꙋтъ дні́е на тѧ̀, и҆ ѡ҆бложа́тъ вразѝ твоѝ ѻ҆стро́гъ ѡ҆ тебѣ̀, и҆ ѡ҆бы́дꙋтъ тѧ̀, и҆ ѡ҆б̾и́мꙋтъ тѧ̀ ѿвсю́дꙋ, |
|
44
|
44
|
| and shall dash thee to the ground, and thy children within thee; and they shall not leave in thee one stone upon another; because thou knewest not the time of thy visitation. | и҆ разбїю́тъ тѧ̀ и҆ ча̑да твоѧ̑ въ тебѣ̀, и҆ не ѡ҆ста́вѧтъ ка́мень на ка́мени въ тебѣ̀: поне́же не разꙋмѣ́лъ є҆сѝ вре́мене посѣще́нїѧ твоегѡ̀. |
|
45
|
45
|
| And he entered into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold therein, and them that bought, | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃и҃.) И҆ вше́дъ въ це́рковь, нача́тъ и҆згони́ти продаю́щыѧ въ не́й и҆ кꙋпꙋ́ющыѧ, |
|
46
|
46
|
| saying unto them, It is written, My house is a house of prayer: but ye have made it a den of robbers. | гл҃ѧ и҆̀мъ: пи́сано є҆́сть: до́мъ мо́й до́мъ моли́твы є҆́сть: вы́ же сотвори́сте є҆го̀ пеще́рꙋ разбо́йникѡмъ. |
|
47
|
47
|
| And he was teaching daily in the temple. But the chief priests and the scribes and the principal men of the people sought to destroy him: | И҆ бѣ̀ оу҆чѧ̀ по всѧ̑ дни̑ въ це́ркви. А҆рхїере́є же и҆ кни́жницы и҆ска́хꙋ є҆го̀ погꙋби́ти, и҆ старѣ́йшины лю́демъ. |
|
48
|
48
|
| and they could not find what they might do; for the people all hung upon him, listening. | И҆ не ѡ҆брѣта́хꙋ, что́ бы сотвори́ли є҆мꙋ̀: лю́дїе бо всѝ держа́хꙋсѧ є҆гѡ̀, послꙋ́шающе є҆го̀. |
|
Chapter 20
|
Глава́ к҃
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And it came to pass, on one of those days, as he was teaching the people in the temple, and preaching the gospel, there came upon him the priests and the scribes with the elders; | (Заⷱ҇ ч҃ѳ҃.) И҆ бы́сть во є҆ди́нъ ѿ дні́й ѻ҆́нѣхъ, оу҆ча́щꙋ є҆мꙋ̀ лю́ди въ це́ркви и҆ бл҃говѣствꙋ́ющꙋ, прїидо́ша свѧще́нницы и҆ кни́жницы со ста̑рцы |
|
2
|
2
|
| and they spake unto him, saying, Tell us: By what authority doest thou these things? or who is he that gave thee this authority? | и҆ рѣ́ша къ немꙋ̀, глаго́люще: рцы̀ на́мъ, ко́ею ѡ҆́бластїю сїѧ̑ твори́ши, и҆лѝ кто̀ є҆́сть да́вый тебѣ̀ вла́сть сїю̀; |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he answered and said unto them, I also will ask you one question; and tell me: | Ѿвѣща́въ же речѐ къ ни̑мъ: вопрошꙋ́ вы и҆ а҆́зъ є҆ди́нагѡ словесѐ, и҆ рцы́те мѝ: |
|
4
|
4
|
| The baptism of John, was it from heaven, or from men? | креще́нїе і҆ѡа́нново съ нб҃се́ ли бѣ̀, и҆лѝ ѿ человѣ̑къ; |
|
5
|
5
|
| And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say, Why did ye not believe him? | Ѻ҆ни́ же помышлѧ́хꙋ въ себѣ̀, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́ще рече́мъ: съ нб҃сѐ, рече́тъ: почто̀ оу҆̀бо не вѣ́ровасте є҆мꙋ̀; |
|
6
|
6
|
| But if we shall say, From men; all the people will stone us: for they are persuaded that John was a prophet. | а҆́ще ли же рече́мъ: ѿ человѣ̑къ, всѝ лю́дїе ка́менїемъ побїю́тъ ны̀: и҆звѣ́стно бо бѣ̀ ѡ҆ і҆ѡа́ннѣ, ꙗ҆́кѡ прⷪ҇ро́къ бѣ̀. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And they answered, that they knew not whence it was. | И҆ ѿвѣща́ша: не вѣ́мы ѿкꙋ́дꙋ. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And Jesus said unto them, Neither tell I you by what authority I do these things. | І҆и҃съ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: ни а҆́зъ гл҃ю ва́мъ, ко́ею ѡ҆́бластїю сїѧ̑ творю̀. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And he began to speak unto the people this parable: A man planted a vineyard, and let it out to husbandmen, and went into another country for a long time. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃.) Нача́тъ же къ лю́демъ глаго́лати при́тчꙋ сїю̀: человѣ́къ нѣ́кїй насадѝ вїногра́дъ, и҆ вдадѐ є҆го̀ дѣ́лателємъ, и҆ ѿи́де на лѣ̑та мнѡ́га. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And at the season he sent unto the husbandmen a servant, that they should give him of the fruit of the vineyard: but the husbandmen beat him, and sent him away empty. | И҆ во вре́мѧ посла̀ къ дѣ́лателємъ раба̀, да ѿ плода̀ вїногра́да дадꙋ́тъ є҆мꙋ̀: дѣ́латєли же би́вше є҆го̀, посла́ша тща̀. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And he sent yet another servant: and him also they beat, and handled him shamefully, and sent him away empty. | И҆ приложѝ посла́ти дрꙋга́го раба̀: ѻ҆ни́ же и҆ того̀ би́вше и҆ досади́вше є҆мꙋ̀, посла́ша тща̀. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And he sent yet a third: and him also they wounded, and cast him forth. | И҆ приложѝ посла́ти тре́тїѧго: ѻ҆ни́ же и҆ того̀ оу҆ѧ́звльше и҆згна́ша. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And the lord of the vineyard said, What shall I do? I will send my beloved son; it may be they will reverence him when they see him. | Рече́ же господи́нъ вїногра́да: что̀ сотворю̀; послю̀ сы́на моего̀ возлю́бленнаго, є҆да̀ ка́кѡ, є҆го̀ ви́дѣвше, оу҆срамѧ́тсѧ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| But when the husbandmen saw him, they reasoned among themselves, saying, This is the heir; come, let us kill him, that the inheritance may be ours. | Ви́дѣвше же є҆го̀ дѣ́лателє, мы́шлѧхꙋ въ себѣ̀, глаго́люще: се́й є҆́сть наслѣ́дникъ: прїиди́те, оу҆бїе́мъ є҆го̀, да на́ше бꙋ́детъ достоѧ́нїе. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And they cast him forth out of the vineyard, and killed him. What therefore will the lord of the vineyard do unto them? | И҆ и҆зве́дше є҆го̀ во́нъ и҆з̾ вїногра́да, оу҆би́ша. Что̀ оу҆̀бо сотвори́тъ и҆̀мъ господи́нъ вїногра́да; |
|
16
|
16
|
| He will come and destroy these husbandmen, and will give the vineyard unto others. And when they heard it, they said, God forbid. | Прїи́детъ и҆ погꙋби́тъ дѣ́латєли сїѧ̑, и҆ вда́стъ вїногра́дъ и҆нѣ̑мъ. Слы́шавше же реко́ша: да не бꙋ́детъ. |
|
17
|
17
|
| But he looked upon them, and said, What then is this that is written, The stone which the builders rejected, The same was made the head of the corner? | Ѻ҆́нъ же воззрѣ́въ на ни́хъ, речѐ: что̀ оу҆̀бо пи́саное сїѐ: ка́мень, є҆гѡ́же небрего́ша зи́ждꙋщїи, се́й бы́сть во главꙋ̀ оу҆́гла; |
|
18
|
18
|
| Everyone that falleth on that stone shall be broken to pieces; but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will scatter him as dust. | Всѧ́къ пады́й на ка́мени то́мъ, сокрꙋши́тсѧ: а҆ на не́мже паде́тъ, стры́етъ є҆го̀. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And the chief priests and the scribes sought to lay hands on him in that very hour; and they were afraid: for they perceived that he spake this parable against them. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃а҃.) И҆ взыска́ша а҆рхїере́є и҆ книжни́цы возложи́ти на́нь рꙋ́цѣ въ то́й ча́съ, и҆ оу҆боѧ́шасѧ наро́да: разꙋмѣ́ша бо, ꙗ҆́кѡ къ ни̑мъ при́тчꙋ сїю̀ речѐ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| And they watched him, and sent forth spies, who feigned themselves to be righteous, that they might take hold of his speech, so that they might deliver him up to the rule and to the authority of the governor. | И҆ наблю́дше посла́ша ла́ѧтєли [навѣ́тникѡвъ], притворѧ́ющихъ себѐ пра́ведники бы́ти: да и҆́мꙋтъ є҆го̀ въ словесѝ, во є҆́же преда́ти є҆го̀ нача́лствꙋ и҆ ѡ҆́бласти и҆ге́мѡновѣ. |
|
21
|
21
|
| And they asked him, saying, Teacher, we know that thou sayest and teachest rightly, and acceptest not the person of any, but of a truth teachest the way of God: | И҆ вопроси́ша є҆го̀, глаго́люще: оу҆чи́телю, вѣ́мы, ꙗ҆́кѡ пра́вѡ глаго́леши и҆ оу҆чи́ши, и҆ не на лица̑ зри́ши, но вои́стиннꙋ пꙋтѝ бж҃їю оу҆чи́ши: |
|
22
|
22
|
| Is it lawful for us to give tribute unto Caesar, or not? | досто́итъ ли на́мъ ке́сареви да́нь даѧ́ти, и҆лѝ нѝ; |
|
23
|
23
|
| But he perceived their craftiness, and said unto them, Why make ye trial of me? | Разꙋмѣ́въ же и҆́хъ лꙋка́вство, речѐ къ ни̑мъ: что́ мѧ и҆скꙋша́ете; |
|
24
|
24
|
| Show me a denarius. Whose image and superscription hath it? And they answered and said, Caesar’s. | покажи́те мѝ ца́тꙋ [дина́рїй]: чі́й и҆́мать ѡ҆́бразъ и҆ надписа́нїе; Ѿвѣща́вше же реко́ша: ке́саревъ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And he said unto them, Render then unto Caesar the things that are Caesar’s, and unto God the things that are God’s. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: воздади́те оу҆̀бо, ꙗ҆́же ке́сарєва, ке́сареви, и҆ ꙗ҆̀же бж҃їѧ, бг҃ови. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And they were not able to take hold of his saying before the people: and they marveled at his answer, and held their peace. | И҆ не мого́ша зазрѣ́ти глаго́ла є҆гѡ̀ пред̾ людьмѝ: и҆ диви́шасѧ ѡ҆ ѿвѣ́тѣ є҆гѡ̀, и҆ оу҆молча́ша. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And there came to him certain of the Sadducees, they that deny that there is a resurrection; and they asked him, | (Заⷱ҇ р҃в҃.) Пристꙋпи́ша же нѣ́цыи ѿ саддꙋкє́й, глаго́лющїи воскрⷭ҇нїю не бы́ти, вопроша́хꙋ є҆го̀, |
|
28
|
28
|
| saying, Teacher, Moses wrote unto us, that if a man’s brother die, having a wife, and he die childless, his brother should take the wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. | глаго́люще: оу҆чи́телю, мѡѷсе́й написа̀ на́мъ: а҆́ще комꙋ̀ бра́тъ оу҆́мретъ и҆мы́й женꙋ̀, и҆ то́й безча́денъ оу҆́мретъ, да бра́тъ є҆гѡ̀ по́йметъ женꙋ̀ и҆ возста́витъ сѣ́мѧ бра́тꙋ своемꙋ̀. |
|
29
|
29
|
| There were therefore seven brethren: and the first took a wife, and died childless; | Се́дмь оу҆̀бо бра́тїй бѣ̀: и҆ пе́рвый поѧ́тъ женꙋ̀, оу҆́мре безча́денъ: |
|
30
|
30
|
| and the second took her to wife, and he died childless: | и҆ поѧ́тъ вторы́й женꙋ̀, и҆ то́й оу҆́мре безча́денъ: |
|
31
|
31
|
| and the third likewise took her; and likewise the seven also: they left no children, and died. | и҆ тре́тїй поѧ́тъ ю҆̀: та́кожде же и҆ всѝ се́дмь: и҆ не ѡ҆ста́виша ча̑дъ, и҆ оу҆мро́ша: |
|
32
|
32
|
| And last of all the woman also died. | по́слѣжде же всѣ́хъ оу҆́мре и҆ жена̀: |
|
33
|
33
|
| In the resurrection therefore whose wife of them shall she be? for the seven had her to wife. | въ воскрⷭ҇нїе оу҆̀бо, кото́рагѡ и҆́хъ бꙋ́детъ жена̀; се́дмь бо и҆мѣ́ша ю҆̀ женꙋ̀. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And Jesus answered and said unto them, The sons of this world marry, and are given in marriage: | И҆ ѿвѣща́въ речѐ и҆̀мъ і҆и҃съ: сы́нове вѣ́ка сегѡ̀ же́нѧтсѧ и҆ посѧга́ютъ: |
|
35
|
35
|
| but they that are accounted worthy to attain to that world, and the resurrection from the dead, neither marry, nor are given in marriage: | а҆ сподо́бльшїисѧ вѣ́къ ѡ҆́нъ оу҆лꙋчи́ти и҆ воскрⷭ҇нїе, є҆́же ѿ ме́ртвыхъ, ни же́нѧтсѧ, ни посѧга́ютъ: |
|
36
|
36
|
| for neither can they die anymore: for they are equal unto the angels; and are sons of God, being sons of the resurrection. | ни оу҆мре́ти бо ктомꙋ̀ мо́гꙋтъ: ра́вни бо сꙋ́ть а҆́гг҃лѡмъ, и҆ сы́нове сꙋ́ть бж҃їи, воскрⷭ҇нїѧ сы́нове сꙋ́ще. |
|
37
|
37
|
| But that the dead are raised, even Moses showed, in the place concerning the Bush, when he calleth the Lord the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob. | А҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ востаю́тъ ме́ртвїи, и҆ мѡѷсе́й сказа̀ при кꙋпинѣ̀, ꙗ҆́коже глаго́летъ гдⷭ҇а бг҃а а҆враа́млѧ и҆ бг҃а і҆саа́кова и҆ бг҃а і҆а́кѡвлѧ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| Now he is not the God of the dead, but of the living: for all live unto him. | Бг҃ъ же нѣ́сть ме́ртвыхъ, но живы́хъ: вси́ бо томꙋ̀ жи́ви сꙋ́ть. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And certain of the scribes answered and said, Teacher, thou hast well said. | Ѿвѣща́вше же нѣ́цый ѿ кни̑жникъ реко́ша: оу҆чи́телю, до́брѣ ре́клъ є҆сѝ. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And they durst not anymore ask him any question. | Ктомꙋ́же не смѣ́ѧхꙋ є҆го̀ вопроси́ти ничесѡ́же. Рече́ же къ ни̑мъ: |
|
41
|
41
|
| And he said unto them, How say they that the Christ is David’s son? | ка́кѡ глаго́лютъ хрⷭ҇та̀ сн҃а дв҃дова бы́ти; |
|
42
|
42
|
| Even David himself saith in the book of Psalms, The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, | Са́мъ бо дв҃дъ глаго́летъ въ кни́зѣ ѱало́мстѣй: речѐ гдⷭ҇ь гдⷭ҇еви моемꙋ̀: сѣдѝ ѡ҆деснꙋ́ю менє̀, |
|
43
|
43
|
| Till I make thine enemies the footstool of thy feet. | до́ндеже положꙋ̀ врагѝ твоѧ̑ подно́жїе нога́ма твои́ма. |
|
44
|
44
|
| David therefore calleth him Lord, and how is he his son? | Дв҃дъ оу҆̀бо гдⷭ҇а є҆го̀ нарица́етъ, и҆ ка́кѡ сн҃ъ є҆мꙋ̀ є҆́сть; |
|
45
|
45
|
| And in the hearing of all the people he said unto his disciples, | (Заⷱ҇ р҃г҃.) Слы́шащымъ же всѣ̑мъ лю́демъ, речѐ оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ свои̑мъ: |
|
46
|
46
|
| Beware of the scribes, who desire to walk in long robes, and love salutations in the marketplaces, and chief seats in the synagogues, and chief places at feasts; | внемли́те себѣ̀ ѿ кни̑жникъ, хотѧ́щихъ ходи́ти во ѻ҆де́ждахъ, и҆ лю́бѧщихъ цѣлова̑нїѧ на то́ржищихъ и҆ предсѣда̑нїѧ на со́нмищихъ, и҆ преждевозлежа̑нїѧ на ве́черѧхъ: |
|
47
|
47
|
| who devour widows’ houses, and for a pretense make long prayers: these shall receive greater condemnation. | и҆̀же снѣда́ютъ до́мы вдови́цъ, и҆ вино́ю дале́че мо́лѧтсѧ [и҆ лицемѣ́рнѡ на до́лзѣ мо́лѧтсѧ]: сі́и прїи́мꙋтъ ли́шше ѡ҆сꙋжде́нїе. |
|
Chapter 21
|
Глава́ к҃а
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And he looked up, and saw the rich men that were casting their gifts into the treasury. | Воззрѣ́въ же ви́дѣ вмета́ющыѧ въ хра́мъ набдѧ́щїй и҆мѣ̑нїѧ [въ сокро́вищное храни́лище] дары̀ своѧ̑ бога̑тыѧ. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And he saw also a certain poor widow casting in thither two mites. | Ви́дѣ же и҆ нѣ́кꙋю вдови́цꙋ оу҆бо́гꙋ вмета́ющꙋ тꙋ̀ двѣ̀ лє́птѣ, |
|
3
|
3
|
| And he said, Of a truth I say unto you, This poor widow cast in more than they all: | и҆ речѐ: вои́стиннꙋ глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ вдови́ца сїѧ̀ оу҆бо́гаѧ мно́жае всѣ́хъ вве́рже: |
|
4
|
4
|
| for all these did of their superfluity cast in unto the gifts of God; but she of her want did cast in all the living that she had. | вси́ бо сі́и ѿ и҆збы́тка своегѡ̀ вверго́ша въ да́ры бг҃ови: сїѧ́ же ѿ лише́нїѧ своегѡ̀ всѐ житїѐ, є҆́же и҆мѣ̀, вве́рже. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And as some spake of the temple, how it was adorned with goodly stones and offerings, he said, | (Заⷱ҇ р҃д҃.) И҆ нѣ̑кимъ глаго́лющымъ ѡ҆ це́ркви, ꙗ҆́кѡ ка́менїемъ до́брымъ и҆ сосꙋ̑ды оу҆кра́шена, речѐ: |
|
6
|
6
|
| As for these things which ye behold, the days will come, in which there shall not be left one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down. | сїѧ̑ ꙗ҆̀же ви́дите, прїи́дꙋтъ дні́е, въ нѧ́же не ѡ҆ста́нетъ ка́мень на ка́мени, и҆́же не разори́тсѧ. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And they asked him, saying, Teacher, when therefore shall these things be? and what shall be the sign when these things are about to come to pass? | Вопроси́ша же є҆го̀, глаго́люще: оу҆чи́телю, когда̀ оу҆̀бо сїѧ̑ бꙋ́дꙋтъ; и҆ что̀ є҆́сть зна́менїе, є҆гда̀ хотѧ́тъ сїѧ̑ бы́ти; |
|
8
|
8
|
| And he said, Take heed that ye be not led astray: for many shall come in my name, saying, I am he; and, The time is at hand: go ye not therefore after them. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃е҃.) Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: блюди́те, да не прельще́ни бꙋ́дете: мно́зи бо прїи́дꙋтъ во и҆́мѧ моѐ, глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́зъ є҆́смь: и҆ вре́мѧ прибли́жисѧ. Не и҆зы́дите оу҆̀бо вослѣ́дъ и҆́хъ. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And when ye shall hear of wars and tumults, be not terrified: for these things must needs come to pass first; but the end is not immediately. | Є҆гда́ же оу҆слы́шите бра̑ни и҆ нестроє́нїѧ, не оу҆бо́йтесѧ: подоба́етъ бо си̑мъ бы́ти пре́жде: но не оу҆̀ а҆́бїе кончи́на. |
|
10
|
10
|
| Then said he unto them, Nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom; | Тогда̀ глаго́лаше и҆̀мъ: воста́нетъ бо ꙗ҆зы́къ на ꙗ҆зы́къ, и҆ ца́рство на ца́рство: |
|
11
|
11
|
| and there shall be great earthquakes in diverse places, and famines, and pestilences; and there shall be terrors and great signs from heaven. | трꙋ́си же вели́цы по мѣ́стѡмъ, и҆ гла́ди и҆ па̑гꙋбы бꙋ́дꙋтъ, страхова̑нїѧ же и҆ зна́мєнїѧ вє́лїѧ съ небесѐ бꙋ́дꙋтъ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| But before all these things, they shall lay their hands on you, and shall persecute you, delivering you up to synagogues and prisons, bringing you before kings and governors for my name’s sake. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃ѕ҃.) Пре́жде же си́хъ всѣ́хъ возложа́тъ на вы̀ рꙋ́ки своѧ̑, и҆ и҆жденꙋ́тъ, предаю́ще на сѡ́нмища и҆ темни̑цы, ведѡ́мы къ царє́мъ и҆ влады́камъ, и҆́мене моегѡ̀ ра́ди: |
|
13
|
13
|
| And it shall turn out unto you for a testimony. | прилꙋчи́тсѧ же ва́мъ во свидѣ́телство. |
|
14
|
14
|
| Settle it therefore in your hearts, not to meditate beforehand how to answer: | Положи́те оу҆̀бо на сердца́хъ ва́шихъ, не пре́жде поꙋча́тисѧ ѿвѣщава́ти: |
|
15
|
15
|
| for I will give you a mouth and wisdom, which all your adversaries shall not be able to gainsay or to withstand. | а҆́зъ бо да́мъ ва́мъ оу҆ста̀ и҆ премꙋ́дрость, є҆́йже не возмо́гꙋтъ проти́витисѧ и҆лѝ ѿвѣща́ти всѝ противлѧ́ющїисѧ ва́мъ. |
|
16
|
16
|
| But ye shall be delivered up even by parents, and kinsfolk, and friends, and brethren; and some of you shall they cause to be put to death. | Пре́дани же бꙋ́дете и҆ роди́тєли и҆ бра́тїею и҆ ро́домъ и҆ дрꙋ̑ги, и҆ оу҆мертвѧ́тъ ѿ ва́съ: |
|
17
|
17
|
| And ye shall be hated of all men for my name’s sake. | и҆ бꙋ́дете ненави́дими ѿ всѣ́хъ и҆́мене моегѡ̀ ра́ди. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And not a hair of your head shall perish. | И҆ вла́съ главы̀ ва́шеѧ не поги́бнетъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| In your patience win ye your souls. | Въ терпѣ́нїи ва́шемъ стѧжи́те дꙋ́шы ва́шѧ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| But when ye see Jerusalem compassed with armies, then know that her desolation is at hand. | Є҆гда́ же оу҆́зрите ѡ҆бстои́мь і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ вѡ́и, тогда̀ разꙋмѣ́йте, ꙗ҆́кѡ прибли́жисѧ запꙋстѣ́нїе є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
21
|
21
|
| Then let them that are in Judea flee unto the mountains; and let them that are in the midst of her depart out; and let not them that are in the country enter therein. | Тогда̀ сꙋ́щїи во і҆ꙋде́и да бѣ́гаютъ въ го́ры: и҆ и҆̀же посредѣ̀ є҆гѡ̀, да и҆схо́дѧтъ: и҆ и҆̀же во страна́хъ, да не вхо́дѧтъ во́нь: |
|
22
|
22
|
| For these are days of vengeance, that all things which are written may be fulfilled. | ꙗ҆́кѡ дні́е ѿмще́нїю сі́и сꙋ́ть, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆спо́лнитисѧ всемꙋ̀ пи́санномꙋ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| But woe unto them that are with child and to them that give suck in those days! for there shall be great distress upon the land, and wrath upon this people. | Го́ре же и҆мꙋ́щымъ во оу҆тро́бѣ и҆ доѧ́щымъ въ ты̑ѧ дни̑: бꙋ́детъ бо бѣда̀ ве́лїѧ на землѝ, и҆ гнѣ́въ на лю́дехъ си́хъ, |
|
24
|
24
|
| And they shall fall by the edge of the sword, and shall be led captive into all the nations: and Jerusalem shall be trodden down of the Gentiles, until the times of the Gentiles be fulfilled. | и҆ падꙋ́тъ во ѻ҆́стрїи меча̀, и҆ плѣне́ни бꙋ́дꙋтъ во всѧ̑ ꙗ҆зы́ки: и҆ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ бꙋ́детъ попира́емь ꙗ҆зы̑ки, до́ндеже сконча́ютсѧ времена̀ ꙗ҆зы̑къ. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And there shall be signs in sun and moon and stars; and upon the earth distress of nations, with perplexity, the sea and the billows roaring; | И҆ бꙋ́дꙋтъ зна́мєнїѧ въ со́лнцѣ и҆ лꙋнѣ̀ и҆ ѕвѣзда́хъ: и҆ на землѝ тꙋга̀ ꙗ҆зы́кѡмъ ѿ неча́ѧнїѧ, шꙋ́ма морска́гѡ и҆ возмꙋще́нїѧ, |
|
26
|
26
|
| men fainting for fear, and for expectation of the things which are coming on the world: for the powers of the heavens shall be shaken. | и҆здыха́ющымъ человѣ́кѡмъ ѿ стра́ха и҆ ча́ѧнїѧ грѧдꙋ́щихъ на вселе́ннꙋю: си̑лы бо небє́сныѧ подви́гнꙋтсѧ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And then shall they see the Son of man coming in a cloud with power and great glory. | И҆ тогда̀ оу҆́зрѧтъ сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческа грѧдꙋ́ща на ѡ҆́блацѣхъ съ си́лою и҆ сла́вою мно́гою. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But when these things begin to come to pass, look up, and lift up your heads; because your redemption draweth nigh. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃з҃.) Начина́ющымъ же си̑мъ быва́ти, восклони́тесѧ и҆ воздви́гните главы̑ ва́шѧ: занѐ приближа́етсѧ и҆збавле́нїе ва́ше. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And he spake to them a parable: Behold the fig tree, and all the trees: | И҆ речѐ при́тчꙋ и҆̀мъ: ви́дите смоко́вницꙋ и҆ всѧ̑ древа̀: |
|
30
|
30
|
| when they now shoot forth, ye see it and know of your own selves that the summer is now nigh. | є҆гда̀ прошиба́ютсѧ оу҆жѐ, ви́дѧще са́ми вѣ́сте, ꙗ҆́кѡ бли́з̾ жа́тва є҆́сть. |
|
31
|
31
|
| Even so ye also, when ye see these things coming to pass, know ye that the kingdom of God is nigh. | Та́кѡ и҆ вы̀, є҆гда̀ оу҆́зрите сїѧ̑ быва̑юща, вѣ́дите, ꙗ҆́кѡ бли́з̾ є҆́сть црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе. |
|
32
|
32
|
| Verily I say unto you, This generation shall not pass away, till all things be accomplished. | А҆ми́нь глаго́лю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆́мать прейтѝ ро́дъ се́й, до́ндеже всѧ̑ сїѧ̑ бꙋ́дꙋтъ. |
|
33
|
33
|
| Heaven and earth shall pass away: but my words shall not pass away. | Не́бо и҆ землѧ̀ мимои́детъ, а҆ словеса̀ моѧ̑ не и҆́мꙋтъ прейтѝ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| But take heed to yourselves, lest haply your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting, and drunkenness, and cares of this life, and that day come on you suddenly; | Внемли́те же себѣ̀, да не когда̀ ѡ҆тѧгча́ютъ сердца̀ ва̑ша ѡ҆б̾ѧде́нїемъ и҆ пїѧ́нствомъ и҆ печа́льми жите́йскими, и҆ на́йдетъ на вы̀ внеза́пꙋ де́нь то́й: |
|
35
|
35
|
| for as a snare shall it come upon all them that dwell on the face of all the earth. | ꙗ҆́кѡ сѣ́ть бо прїи́детъ на всѧ̑ живꙋ́щыѧ на лицы̀ всеѧ̀ землѝ. |
|
36
|
36
|
| Watch ye therefore at every season, making supplication, that ye may be accounted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and to stand before the Son of man. | Бди́те оу҆̀бо на всѧ́ко вре́мѧ молѧ́щесѧ, да сподо́битесѧ оу҆бѣжа́ти всѣ́хъ си́хъ хотѧ́щихъ бы́ти, и҆ ста́ти пред̾ сн҃омъ чл҃вѣ́ческимъ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| And every day he was teaching in the temple; and every night he went out, and lodged in the mount that is called Olivet. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃и҃.) Бѣ́ же во дни̑ во це́ркви оу҆чѧ̀: но́щїю же и҆сходѧ̀ водворѧ́шесѧ въ горѣ̀ нарица́емѣй є҆леѡ́нъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And all the people came early in the morning to him in the temple, to hear him. | И҆ всѝ лю́дїе и҆з̾ оу҆́тра прихожда́хꙋ къ немꙋ̀ во це́рковь послꙋ́шати є҆го̀. |
|
Chapter 22
|
Глава́ к҃в
|
|
1
|
1
|
| Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh, which is called the Passover. | Приближа́шесѧ же пра́здникъ ѡ҆прѣснѡ́къ, глаго́лемый па́сха: |
|
2
|
2
|
| And the chief priests and the scribes sought how they might put him to death; for they feared the people. | и҆ и҆ска́хꙋ а҆рхїере́є и҆ кни́жницы, ка́кѡ бы оу҆би́ли є҆го̀: боѧ́хꙋсѧ бо люде́й. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And Satan entered into Judas who was called Iscariot, being of the number of the twelve. | Вни́де же сатана̀ во і҆ꙋ́дꙋ нарица́емаго і҆скарїѡ́тъ, сꙋ́ща ѿ числа̀ ѻ҆боюна́десѧте. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And he went away, and communed with the chief priests and captains, how he might deliver him unto them. | И҆ ше́дъ глаго́ла а҆рхїере́ѡмъ и҆ воево́дамъ, ка́кѡ є҆го̀ преда́стъ и҆̀мъ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| And they were glad, and covenanted to give him money. | И҆ возра́довашасѧ, и҆ совѣща́ша є҆мꙋ̀ сре́бреники да́ти: |
|
6
|
6
|
| And he consented, and sought opportunity to deliver him unto them in the absence of the multitude. | и҆ и҆сповѣ́да [ѡ҆бѣща́сѧ], и҆ и҆ска́ше оу҆до́бна вре́мене, да преда́стъ є҆го̀ и҆̀мъ без̾ наро́да. |
|
7
|
7
|
| And the day of unleavened bread came, on which the passover must be sacrificed. | Прїи́де же де́нь ѡ҆прѣсно́кѡвъ, во́ньже подоба́ше жре́ти па́схꙋ: |
|
8
|
8
|
| And he sent Peter and John, saying, Go and make ready for us the passover, that we may eat. | и҆ посла̀ петра̀ и҆ і҆ѡа́нна, ре́къ: шє́дша оу҆гото́вайта на́мъ па́схꙋ, да ꙗ҆́мы. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And they said unto him, Where wilt thou that we make ready? | Ѡ҆́на же реко́ста є҆мꙋ̀: гдѣ̀ хо́щеши оу҆гото́ваемъ; |
|
10
|
10
|
| And he said unto them, Behold, when ye are entered into the city, there shall meet you a man bearing a pitcher of water; follow him into the house whereinto he goeth. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆́ма: сѐ восходѧ́щема ва́ма во гра́дъ, срѧ́щетъ вы̀ человѣ́къ въ скꙋде́льницѣ во́дꙋ носѧ̀: по не́мъ и҆дѣ́та въ до́мъ, во́ньже вхо́дитъ, |
|
11
|
11
|
| And ye shall say unto the master of the house, The Teacher saith unto thee, Where is the guestchamber, where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? | и҆ рцѣ́та до́мꙋ влады́цѣ: глаго́летъ тебѣ̀ оу҆чт҃ль: гдѣ̀ є҆́сть ѡ҆би́тель, и҆дѣ́же па́схꙋ со оу҆чн҃ки̑ мои́ми снѣ́мъ; |
|
12
|
12
|
| And he will show you a large upper room furnished: there make ready. | И҆ то́й ва́ма пока́жетъ го́рницꙋ ве́лїю по́стланꙋ: тꙋ̀ оу҆гото́вайта. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And they went, and found as he had said unto them: and they made ready the passover. | Шє́дша же ѡ҆брѣто́ста, ꙗ҆́коже речѐ и҆́ма: и҆ оу҆гото́васта па́схꙋ. |
|
14
|
14
|
| And when the hour was come, he sat down, and the twelve apostles with him. | И҆ є҆гда̀ бы́сть ча́съ, возлежѐ, и҆ ѻ҆бана́десѧте а҆пⷭ҇ла съ ни́мъ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And he said unto them, With desire I have desired to eat this passover with you before I suffer: | И҆ речѐ къ ни̑мъ: жела́нїемъ возжелѣ́хъ сїю̀ па́схꙋ ꙗ҆́сти съ ва́ми, пре́жде да́же не прїимꙋ̀ мꙋ́къ: |
|
16
|
16
|
| for I say unto you, I shall not anymore eat thereof, until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God. | глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѿсе́лѣ не и҆́мамъ ꙗ҆́сти ѿ неѧ̀, до́ндеже сконча́ютсѧ во црⷭ҇твїи бж҃їи. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And he received a cup, and when he had given thanks, he said, Take this, and divide it among yourselves: | И҆ прїи́мъ ча́шꙋ, хвалꙋ̀ возда́въ, речѐ: прїими́те сїю̀, и҆ раздѣли́те себѣ̀: |
|
18
|
18
|
| for I say unto you, that I shall not drink of the fruit of the vine, until the kingdom of God shall come. | глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ не и҆́мамъ пи́ти ѿ плода̀ ло́знагѡ, до́ндеже црⷭ҇твїе бж҃їе прїи́детъ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| And he took bread, and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and gave to them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance of me. | И҆ прїи́мъ хлѣ́бъ, хвалꙋ̀ возда́въ преломѝ, и҆ дадѐ и҆̀мъ, глаго́лѧ: сїѐ є҆́сть тѣ́ло моѐ, є҆́же за вы̀ дае́мо: сїѐ твори́те въ моѐ воспомина́нїе. |
|
20
|
20
|
| In like manner also the cup after supper, saying, This cup is the new covenant in my blood, even that which is poured out for you. | Та́кожде же и҆ ча́шꙋ по ве́чери, глаго́лѧ: сїѧ̀ ча́ша но́вый завѣ́тъ мое́ю кро́вїю, ꙗ҆́же за вы̀ пролива́етсѧ: |
|
21
|
21
|
| But behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the table. | ѻ҆ба́че сѐ, рꙋка̀ предаю́щагѡ мѧ̀ со мно́ю (є҆́сть) на трапе́зѣ, |
|
22
|
22
|
| And the Son of man indeed goeth, as it hath been determined: but woe unto that man through whom he is betrayed! | и҆ сн҃ъ оу҆́бѡ чл҃вѣ́ческїй и҆́детъ по рече́нномꙋ [по пред̾ꙋста́вленномꙋ совѣ́тꙋ]: ѻ҆ба́че го́ре человѣ́кꙋ томꙋ̀, и҆́мже предае́тсѧ. |
|
23
|
23
|
| And they began to question among themselves, which of them it was that should do this thing. | И҆ ті́и нача́ша и҆ска́ти въ себѣ̀, кото́рый оу҆́бѡ ѿ ни́хъ хо́щетъ сїѐ сотвори́ти. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And there arose also a contention among them, which of them was accounted to be greatest. | Бы́сть же и҆ прѧ̀ въ ни́хъ, кі́й мни́тсѧ и҆́хъ бы́ти бо́лїй. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And he said unto them, The kings of the Gentiles have lordship over them; and they that have authority over them are called Benefactors. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: ца́рїе ꙗ҆зы̑къ госпо́дствꙋютъ и҆́ми, и҆ ѡ҆блада́ющїи и҆́ми благода́телє нарица́ютсѧ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| But ye shall not be so: but he that is the greater among you, let him become as the younger; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve. | Вы́ же не та́кѡ: но бо́лїй въ ва́съ, да бꙋ́детъ ꙗ҆́кѡ мні́й: и҆ ста́рѣй, ꙗ҆́кѡ слꙋжа́й. |
|
27
|
27
|
| For which is greater, he that sitteth at meat, or he that serveth? is not he that sitteth at meat? but I am in the midst of you as he that serveth. | Кто́ бо бо́лїй, возлежа́й ли, и҆лѝ слꙋжа́й; не возлежа́й ли; А҆́зъ же посредѣ̀ ва́съ є҆́смь ꙗ҆́кѡ слꙋжа́й. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But ye are they that have continued with me in my temptations; | Вы́ же є҆стѐ пребы́вше со мно́ю въ напа́стехъ мои́хъ: |
|
29
|
29
|
| and I appoint unto you a kingdom, even as my Father appointed unto me, | и҆ а҆́зъ завѣщава́ю ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́коже завѣща̀ мнѣ̀ ѻ҆ц҃ъ мо́й, црⷭ҇тво, |
|
30
|
30
|
| that ye may eat and drink at my table; and ye shall sit on thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel. | да ꙗ҆́сте и҆ пїе́те на трапе́зѣ мое́й во црⷭ҇твїи мое́мъ: и҆ сѧ́дете на престо́лѣхъ, сꙋдѧ́ще ѻ҆бѣмана́десѧте колѣ́нома і҆и҃левома. |
|
31
|
31
|
| And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan asked to have you, that he might sift you as wheat: | Рече́ же гдⷭ҇ь: сі́мѡне, сі́мѡне, сѐ сатана̀ про́ситъ ва́съ, да бы̀ сѣ́ѧлъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ пшени́цꙋ: |
|
32
|
32
|
| but I made supplication for thee, that thy faith fail not; and do thou, when once thou hast turned again, establish thy brethren. | а҆́зъ же моли́хсѧ ѡ҆ тебѣ̀, да не ѡ҆скꙋдѣ́етъ вѣ́ра твоѧ̀: и҆ ты̀ нѣ́когда ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ оу҆твердѝ бра́тїю твою̀. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And he said unto him, Lord, with thee I am ready to go both to prison and to death. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: гдⷭ҇и, съ тобо́ю гото́въ є҆́смь и҆ въ темни́цꙋ и҆ на сме́рть и҆тѝ. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And he said, I tell thee, Peter, the cock shall not crow this day, before thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me. | Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ: глаго́лю тѝ, пе́тре, не возгласи́тъ пѣ́тель дне́сь, до́ндеже трикра́ты ѿве́ржешисѧ менє̀ не вѣ́дѣти. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And he said unto them, When I sent you forth without purse, and wallet, and shoes, lacked ye anything? And they said, Nothing. | И҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: є҆гда̀ посла́хъ вы̀ без̾ влага́лища и҆ без̾ мѣ́ха и҆ без̾ сапѡ́гъ, є҆да̀ чесогѡ̀ лише́ни бы́сте; Ѻ҆ни́ же рѣ́ша: ничесѡ́же. |
|
36
|
36
|
| He said therefore unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take it, and likewise a wallet; and he that hath none, he shall sell his cloak, and buy a sword. | Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: но нн҃ѣ и҆́же и҆́мать влага́лище, да во́зметъ, та́кожде и҆ мѣ́хъ: а҆ и҆́же не и҆́мать, да прода́стъ ри́зꙋ свою̀, и҆ кꙋ́питъ но́жъ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| For I say unto you, that this which is written must yet be fulfilled in me, And he was reckoned with transgressors: for the things concerning me have fulfillment. | Глаго́лю бо ва́мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ є҆щѐ пи́саное сѐ, подоба́етъ, да сконча́етсѧ ѡ҆ мнѣ̀, є҆́же: и҆ со беззако́нными вмѣни́сѧ. И҆́бо є҆́же ѡ҆ мнѣ̀, кончи́нꙋ и҆́мать. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And they said, Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough. | Ѻ҆ни́ же рѣ́ша: гдⷭ҇и, сѐ нѡжа̀ здѣ̀ два̀. Ѻ҆́нъ же речѐ и҆̀мъ: дово́лно є҆́сть. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And he came out, and went, as his custom was, unto the mount of Olives; and his disciples also followed him. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃ѳ҃.) И҆ и҆зше́дъ и҆́де по ѡ҆бы́чаю въ го́рꙋ є҆леѡ́нскꙋю: по не́мъ же и҆до́ша оу҆чн҃цы̀ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And when he was at the place, he said unto them, Pray that ye enter not into temptation. | Бы́въ же на мѣ́стѣ, речѐ и҆̀мъ: моли́тесѧ, да не вни́дете въ напа́сть. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And he was parted from them about a stone’s cast; and he knelt down and prayed, | И҆ са́мъ ѿстꙋпѝ ѿ ни́хъ ꙗ҆́кѡ верже́нїемъ ка́мене, и҆ покло́нь колѣ̑на молѧ́шесѧ, |
|
42
|
42
|
| saying, Father, if thou be willing to remove this cup from me—nevertheless not my will, but thine, be done. | глаго́лѧ: ѻ҆́ч҃е, а҆́ще во́лиши мимонестѝ ча́шꙋ сїю̀ ѿ менє̀: ѻ҆ба́че не моѧ̀ во́лѧ, но твоѧ̀ да бꙋ́детъ. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And there appeared unto him an angel from heaven, strengthening him. | Ꙗ҆ви́сѧ же є҆мꙋ̀ а҆́гг҃лъ съ нб҃сѐ, оу҆крѣплѧ́ѧ є҆го̀. |
|
44
|
44
|
| And being in an agony he prayed more earnestly; and his sweat became as it were great drops of blood falling down upon the ground. | И҆ бы́въ въ по́двизѣ, прилѣ́жнѣе молѧ́шесѧ: бы́сть же по́тъ є҆гѡ̀ ꙗ҆́кѡ ка̑пли кро́ве ка́плющыѧ на зе́млю. |
|
45
|
45
|
| And when he rose up from his prayer, he came unto the disciples, and found them sleeping for sorrow, | И҆ воста́въ ѿ моли́твы (и҆) прише́дъ ко оу҆чн҃кѡ́мъ, ѡ҆брѣ́те и҆̀хъ спѧ́щихъ ѿ печа́ли |
|
46
|
46
|
| and said unto them, Why sleep ye? rise and pray, that ye enter not into temptation. | и҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: что̀ спитѐ; воста́вше моли́тесѧ, да не вни́дете въ напа́сть. |
|
47
|
47
|
| And while he yet spake, behold, a multitude, and he that was called Judas, one of the twelve, went before them; and he drew near unto Jesus to kiss him. | Є҆ще́ же є҆мꙋ̀ глаго́лющꙋ, сѐ наро́дъ, и҆ нарица́емый і҆ꙋ́да, є҆ди́нъ ѿ ѻ҆боюна́десѧте, и҆дѧ́ше пред̾ ни́ми, и҆ пристꙋпѝ ко і҆и҃сови цѣлова́ти є҆го̀. Сїе́ бо бѣ̀ зна́менїе да́лъ и҆̀мъ: є҆го́же а҆́ще лобжꙋ̀, то́й є҆́сть. |
|
48
|
48
|
| But Jesus said unto him, Judas, betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss? | І҆и҃съ же речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: і҆ꙋ́до, лобза́нїемъ ли сн҃а чл҃вѣ́ческаго предае́ши; |
|
49
|
49
|
| And when they that were about him saw what would follow, they said unto him, Lord, shall we smite with the sword? | Ви́дѣвше же, и҆̀же бѣ́хꙋ съ ни́мъ, быва́емое, рѣ́ша є҆мꙋ̀: гдⷭ҇и, а҆́ще оу҆да́римъ ноже́мъ; |
|
50
|
50
|
| And a certain one of them smote the servant of the high priest, and struck off his right ear. | И҆ оу҆да́ри є҆ди́нъ нѣ́кїй ѿ ни́хъ а҆рхїере́ова раба̀, и҆ оу҆рѣ́за є҆мꙋ̀ оу҆́хо десно́е. |
|
51
|
51
|
| But Jesus answered and said, Suffer ye them thus far. And he touched his ear, and healed him. | Ѿвѣща́въ же і҆и҃съ речѐ: ѡ҆ста́вите до сегѡ̀. И҆ коснꙋ́всѧ оу҆́ха є҆гѡ̀, и҆сцѣлѝ є҆го̀. |
|
52
|
52
|
| And Jesus said unto the chief priests, and captains of the temple, and elders, that were come against him, Are ye come out, as against a robber, with swords and staves? | Рече́ же і҆и҃съ ко прише́дшымъ на́нь а҆рхїере́ѡмъ и҆ воево́дамъ церкѡ́внымъ и҆ ста́рцємъ: ꙗ҆́кѡ на разбо́йника ли и҆зыдо́сте со ѻ҆рꙋ́жїемъ и҆ дреко́льми ꙗ҆́ти мѧ̀; |
|
53
|
53
|
| When I was daily with you in the temple, ye stretched not forth your hands against me: but this is your hour, and the power of darkness. | по всѧ̑ дни̑ сꙋ́щꙋ мѝ съ ва́ми въ це́ркви, не простро́сте рꙋкѝ на мѧ̀: но сѐ є҆́сть ва́ша годи́на и҆ ѡ҆́бласть те́мнаѧ. |
|
54
|
54
|
| And they seized him, and led him away, and brought him into the high priest’s house. But Peter followed afar off. | Є҆́мше же є҆го̀ ведо́ша, и҆ введо́ша є҆го̀ во дво́ръ а҆рхїере́овъ. Пе́тръ же вослѣ́дъ и҆дѧ́ше и҆здале́ча. |
|
55
|
55
|
| And when they had kindled a fire in the midst of the court, and had sat down together, Peter sat in the midst of them. | Возгнѣ́щшымъ же ѻ҆́гнь посредѣ̀ двора̀ и҆ вкꙋ́пѣ сѣдѧ́щымъ и҆̀мъ, сѣдѧ́ше пе́тръ посредѣ̀ и҆́хъ. |
|
56
|
56
|
| And a certain maid seeing him as he sat in the light of the fire, and looking steadfastly upon him, said, This man also was with him. | Оу҆зрѣ́вши же є҆го̀ рабы́нѧ нѣ́каѧ сѣдѧ́ща при свѣ́тѣ [ѻ҆гнѝ], и҆ воззрѣ́вши на́нь, речѐ: и҆ се́й съ ни́мъ бѣ̀. |
|
57
|
57
|
| But he denied him, saying, Woman, I know him not. | Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿве́ржесѧ є҆гѡ̀, глаго́лѧ: же́но, не зна́ю є҆гѡ̀. |
|
58
|
58
|
| And after a little while another saw him, and said, Thou also art one of them. But Peter said, Man, I am not. | И҆ пома́лѣ дрꙋгі́й ви́дѣвъ є҆го̀, речѐ: и҆ ты̀ ѿ ни́хъ є҆сѝ. Пе́тръ же речѐ: человѣ́че, нѣ́смь. |
|
59
|
59
|
| And after the space of about one hour another confidently affirmed, saying, Of a truth this man also was with him; for he is also a Galilean. | И҆ мимоше́дшꙋ ꙗ҆́кѡ часꙋ̀ є҆ди́номꙋ, и҆́нъ нѣ́кїй крѣплѧ́шесѧ глаго́лѧ: вои́стиннꙋ и҆ се́й съ ни́мъ бѣ̀: и҆́бо галїле́анинъ є҆́сть. |
|
60
|
60
|
| But Peter said, Man, I know not what thou sayest. And immediately, while he yet spake, a cock crowed. | Рече́ же пе́тръ: человѣ́че, не вѣ́мъ, є҆́же глаго́леши. И҆ а҆́бїе, є҆щѐ глаго́лющꙋ є҆мꙋ̀, возгласѝ пѣ́тель. |
|
61
|
61
|
| And the Lord turned, and looked upon Peter. And Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how that he said unto him, Before the cock crow thou shalt deny me thrice. | И҆ ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ гдⷭ҇ь воззрѣ̀ на петра̀: и҆ помѧнꙋ̀ пе́тръ сло́во гдⷭ҇не, ꙗ҆́коже речѐ є҆мꙋ̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ пре́жде да́же пѣ́тель не возгласи́тъ, ѿве́ржешисѧ менє̀ трикра́ты. |
|
62
|
62
|
| And Peter went out, and wept bitterly. | И҆ и҆зше́дъ во́нъ, пла́касѧ го́рькѡ. |
|
63
|
63
|
| And the men that held Jesus mocked him, and beat him. | И҆ мꙋ́жїе держа́щїи і҆и҃са рꙋга́хꙋсѧ є҆мꙋ̀, бїю́ще: |
|
64
|
64
|
| And having blindfolded him, they struck him on the face, and asked him, saying, Prophesy: who is he that struck thee? | и҆ закры́вше є҆го̀, бїѧ́хꙋ є҆го̀ по лицꙋ̀, и҆ вопроша́хꙋ є҆го̀, глаго́люще: прорцы̀, кто̀ є҆́сть оу҆даре́й тѧ̀; |
|
65
|
65
|
| And many other things spake they against him, reviling him. | И҆ и҆́на мнѡ́га хꙋ́лѧще глаго́лахꙋ на́нь. |
|
66
|
66
|
| And as soon as it was day, the assembly of the elders of the people was gathered together, chief priests and scribes; and they led him up into their council, saying, | И҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ бы́сть де́нь, собра́шасѧ ста́рцы людсті́и и҆ а҆рхїере́є и҆ кни́жницы, и҆ ведо́ша є҆го̀ на со́нмъ сво́й, |
|
67
|
67
|
| If thou art the Christ, tell us. But he said unto them, If I tell you, ye will not believe: | глаго́люще: а҆́ще ты̀ є҆сѝ хрⷭ҇то́съ; рцы̀ на́мъ. Рече́ же и҆̀мъ: а҆́ще ва́мъ рекꙋ̀, не и҆́мете вѣ́ры: |
|
68
|
68
|
| and if I also ask you, ye will not answer me, nor let me go. | а҆́ще же и҆ вопрошꙋ̀ (вы̀), не ѿвѣща́ете мѝ, ни ѿпꙋститѐ: |
|
69
|
69
|
| From henceforth shall the Son of man be seated at the right hand of the power of God. | ѿсе́лѣ бꙋ́детъ сн҃ъ чл҃вѣ́ческїй сѣдѧ́й ѡ҆деснꙋ́ю си́лы бж҃їѧ. |
|
70
|
70
|
| And they all said, Art thou then the Son of God? And he said unto them, Ye say that I am. | Рѣ́ша же всѝ: ты́ ли оу҆̀бо є҆сѝ сн҃ъ бж҃їй; Ѻ҆́нъ же къ ни̑мъ речѐ: вы̀ глаго́лете, ꙗ҆́кѡ а҆́зъ є҆́смь. |
|
71
|
71
|
| And they said, What further need have we of witness? for we ourselves have heard from his own mouth. | Ѻ҆ни́ же рѣ́ша: что̀ є҆щѐ тре́бꙋемъ свидѣ́телства; са́ми бо слы́шахомъ ѿ оу҆́стъ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
Chapter 23
|
Глава́ к҃г
|
|
1
|
1
|
| And the whole company of them rose up, and brought him before Pilate. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃і҃.) И҆ воста́вше всѐ мно́жество и҆́хъ, ведо́ша є҆го̀ къ пїла́тꙋ. |
|
2
|
2
|
| And they began to accuse him, saying, We found this man perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Caesar, saying that he himself is Christ a king. | Нача́ша же на́нь ва́дити, глаго́люще: сего̀ ѡ҆брѣто́хомъ развраща́юща ꙗ҆зы́къ на́шъ и҆ возбранѧ́юща ке́сареви да́нь даѧ́ти, глаго́люща себѐ хрⷭ҇та̀ цр҃ѧ̀ бы́ти. |
|
3
|
3
|
| And Pilate asked him, saying, Art thou the King of the Jews? And he answered him and said, Thou sayest. | Пїла́тъ же вопросѝ є҆го̀, глаго́лѧ: ты́ ли є҆сѝ цр҃ь і҆ꙋде́ѡмъ; Ѻ҆́нъ же ѿвѣща́въ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀: ты̀ глаго́леши. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And Pilate said unto the chief priests and the multitudes, I find no fault in this man. | Пїла́тъ же речѐ ко а҆рхїере́ѡмъ и҆ наро́дꙋ: нико́еѧже ѡ҆брѣта́ю вины̀ въ чл҃вѣ́цѣ се́мъ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| But they were the more urgent, saying, He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Judea, beginning from Galilee even unto this place. | Ѻ҆ни́ же крѣплѧ́хꙋсѧ глаго́люще, ꙗ҆́кѡ развраща́етъ лю́ди, оу҆чѧ̀ по все́и і҆ꙋде́и, наче́нъ ѿ галїле́и до здѣ̀. |
|
6
|
6
|
| But when Pilate heard of Galilee, he asked whether the man were a Galilean. | Пїла́тъ же слы́шавъ галїле́ю, вопросѝ, а҆́ще чл҃вѣ́къ галїле́анинъ є҆́сть; |
|
7
|
7
|
| And when he knew that he was of Herod’s jurisdiction, he sent him unto Herod, who himself also was at Jerusalem in these days. | И҆ разꙋмѣ́въ, ꙗ҆́кѡ ѿ ѡ҆́бласти и҆́рѡдовы є҆́сть, посла̀ є҆го̀ ко и҆́рѡдꙋ, сꙋ́щꙋ и҆ томꙋ̀ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мѣ въ ты̑ѧ дни̑. |
|
8
|
8
|
| Now when Herod saw Jesus, he was exceeding glad: for he was of a long time desirous to see him, because he had heard many things concerning him; and he hoped to see some miracle done by him. | И҆́рѡдъ же ви́дѣвъ і҆и҃са ра́дъ бы́сть ѕѣлѡ̀: бѣ́ бо жела́ѧ ѿ мно́га вре́мене ви́дѣти є҆го̀, занѐ слы́шаше мнѡ́га ѡ҆ не́мъ: и҆ надѣ́ѧшесѧ зна́менїе нѣ́кое ви́дѣти ѿ негѡ̀ быва́емо. |
|
9
|
9
|
| And he questioned him in many words; but he answered him nothing. | Вопроша́ше же є҆го̀ словесы̀ мно́гими: ѻ҆́нъ же ничесѡ́же ѿвѣщава́ше є҆мꙋ̀. |
|
10
|
10
|
| And the chief priests and the scribes stood, vehemently accusing him. | Стоѧ́хꙋ же а҆рхїере́є и҆ кни́жницы, прилѣ́жнѡ ва́дѧще на́нь. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And Herod with his soldiers set him at nought, and mocked him, and arraying him in gorgeous apparel sent him back to Pilate. | Оу҆кори́въ же є҆го̀ и҆́рѡдъ съ вѡ́и свои́ми и҆ порꙋга́всѧ, ѡ҆бо́лкъ є҆го̀ въ ри́зꙋ свѣ́тлꙋ, возвратѝ є҆го̀ къ пїла́тꙋ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| And Pilate and Herod became friends with each other that very day: for before they were at enmity between themselves. | Бы́ста же дрꙋ̑га и҆́рѡдъ же и҆ пїла́тъ въ то́й де́нь съ собо́ю: пре́жде бо бѣ́ста враждꙋ̀ и҆мꙋ̑ща междꙋ̀ собо́ю. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And Pilate called together the chief priests and the rulers and the people, | Пїла́тъ же созва́въ а҆рхїерє́и и҆ кнѧ̑зи и҆ лю́ди, |
|
14
|
14
|
| and said unto them, Ye brought unto me this man, as one that perverteth the people: and behold, I, having examined him before you, found no fault in this man touching those things whereof ye accuse him: | речѐ къ ни̑мъ: приведо́сте мѝ чл҃вѣ́ка сего̀, ꙗ҆́кѡ развраща́юща лю́ди: и҆ сѐ а҆́зъ пред̾ ва́ми и҆стѧза́въ, ни є҆ди́ныѧ же ѡ҆брѣта́ю въ чл҃вѣ́цѣ се́мъ вины̀, ꙗ҆̀же на́нь ва́дите: |
|
15
|
15
|
| no, nor yet Herod: for I sent you to him; and behold, nothing worthy of death hath been done by him. | но ни и҆́рѡдъ: посла́хъ бо є҆го̀ къ немꙋ̀, и҆ сѐ ничто́же досто́йно сме́рти сотворе́но є҆́сть ѡ҆ не́мъ: |
|
16
|
16
|
| I will therefore chastise him, and release him. | наказа́въ оу҆̀бо є҆го̀ ѿпꙋщꙋ̀. |
|
17
|
17
|
| (Now he must needs release unto them at the feast one prisoner.) | Нꙋ́ждꙋ же и҆мѧ́ше на всѧ̑ пра́здники ѿпꙋща́ти и҆̀мъ є҆ди́наго. |
|
18
|
18
|
| And they cried out all together, saying, Away with this man, and release unto us Barabbas— | Возопи́ша же всѝ наро́ди, глаго́люще: возмѝ сего̀, ѿпꙋсти́ же на́мъ вара́ввꙋ. |
|
19
|
19
|
| one who for a certain insurrection made in the city, and for murder, was cast into prison. | И҆́же бѣ̀ за нѣ́кꙋю крамо́лꙋ бы́вшꙋю во гра́дѣ и҆ оу҆бі́йство вве́рженъ въ темни́цꙋ. |
|
20
|
20
|
| Pilate therefore spake unto them again, desiring to release Jesus; | Па́ки же пїла́тъ возгласѝ, хотѧ̀ ѿпꙋсти́ти і҆и҃са. |
|
21
|
21
|
| but they shouted, saying, Crucify, crucify him. | Ѻ҆ни́ же возглаша́хꙋ, глаго́люще: распнѝ, распнѝ є҆го̀. |
|
22
|
22
|
| And he said unto them the third time, Why, what evil hath this man done? I have found no cause of death in him: I will therefore chastise him and release him. | Ѻ҆́нъ же трети́цею речѐ къ ни̑мъ: что́ бо ѕло̀ сотворѝ се́й; ничесѡ́же досто́йна сме́рти ѡ҆брѣто́хъ въ не́мъ: наказа́въ оу҆̀бо є҆го̀ ѿпꙋщꙋ̀. |
|
23
|
23
|
| But they were urgent with loud voices, asking that he might be crucified. And the voices of them and of the chief priests prevailed. | Ѻ҆ни́ же прилѣжа́хꙋ гла̑сы вели́кими, просѧ́ще є҆го̀ на распѧ́тїе: и҆ оу҆стоѧ́хꙋ [превозмога́хꙋ] гла́си и҆́хъ и҆ а҆рхїере́йстїи. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And Pilate gave sentence that what they asked for should be done. | Пїла́тъ же посꙋдѝ бы́ти проше́нїю и҆́хъ: |
|
25
|
25
|
| And he released him that for insurrection and murder had been cast into prison, whom they asked for; but Jesus he delivered up to their will. | ѿпꙋсти́ же бы́вшаго за крамолꙋ̀ и҆ оу҆бі́йство всажде́на въ темни́цꙋ, є҆го́же проша́хꙋ: і҆и҃са же предадѐ во́ли и҆́хъ. |
|
26
|
26
|
| And when they led him away, they laid hold upon one Simon of Cyrene, coming from the country, and laid on him the cross, to bear it after Jesus. | И҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ поведо́ша є҆го̀, є҆́мше сі́мѡна нѣ́коего кѷрине́а, грѧдꙋ́ща съ села̀, возложи́ша на́нь крⷭ҇тъ, нестѝ по і҆и҃сѣ. |
|
27
|
27
|
| And there followed him a great multitude of the people, and of women who also bewailed and lamented him. | И҆дѧ́ше же вослѣ́дъ є҆гѡ̀ наро́дъ мно́гъ люде́й, и҆ жєны̀, ꙗ҆̀же и҆ пла́кахꙋсѧ и҆ рыда́хꙋ є҆гѡ̀. |
|
28
|
28
|
| But Jesus turning unto them said, Daughters of Jerusalem, weep not for me, but weep for yourselves, and for your children. | Ѡ҆бра́щьсѧ же къ ни̑мъ і҆и҃съ речѐ: дщє́ри і҆ерⷭ҇ли̑мски, не пла́читесѧ ѡ҆ мнѣ̀, ѻ҆ба́че себѐ пла́чите и҆ ча̑дъ ва́шихъ: |
|
29
|
29
|
| For behold, the days are coming, in which they shall say, Blessed are the barren, and wombs that never bare, and the breasts that never gave suck. | ꙗ҆́кѡ сѐ дні́е грѧдꙋ́тъ, въ нѧ́же рекꙋ́тъ: блажє́ны неплѡ́ды, и҆ оу҆трѡ́бы, ꙗ҆̀же не роди́ша, и҆ сосцы̀, и҆̀же не дои́ша. |
|
30
|
30
|
| Then shall they begin to say to the mountains, Fall on us; and to the hills, Cover us. | Тогда̀ начнꙋ́тъ глаго́лати гора́мъ: пади́те на ны̀: и҆ холмѡ́мъ: покры́йте ны̀. |
|
31
|
31
|
| For if they do these things in the green tree, what shall be done in the dry? | Занѐ, а҆́ще въ сꙋ́ровѣ дре́вѣ сїѧ̑ творѧ́тъ, въ сꙋ́сѣ что̀ бꙋ́детъ; |
|
32
|
32
|
| And there were also two others, malefactors, led with him to be put to death. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃а҃і҃.) Ведѧ́хꙋ же и҆ и҆́на два̀ ѕлодѣ̑ѧ съ ни́мъ оу҆би́ти. |
|
33
|
33
|
| And when they came unto the place which is called The skull, there they crucified him, and the malefactors, one on the right hand and the other on the left. | И҆ є҆гда̀ прїидо́ша на мѣ́сто, нарица́емое ло́бное, тꙋ̀ распѧ́ша є҆го̀ и҆ ѕлодѣ̑ѧ, ѻ҆́ваго оу҆́бѡ ѡ҆деснꙋ́ю, а҆ дрꙋга́го ѡ҆шꙋ́юю. |
|
34
|
34
|
| And Jesus said, Father, forgive them; for they know not what they do. And parting his garments among them, they cast lots. | І҆и҃съ же глаго́лаше: ѻ҆́ч҃е, ѿпꙋстѝ и҆̀мъ: не вѣ́дѧтъ бо что̀ творѧ́тъ. Раздѣлѧ́юще же ри̑зы є҆гѡ̀, мета́хꙋ жрє́бїѧ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And the people stood beholding. And the rulers also with them scoffed at him, saying, He saved others; let him save himself, if this is the Christ, the chosen of God. | И҆ стоѧ́хꙋ лю́дїе зрѧ́ще. Рꙋга́хꙋсѧ же и҆ кнѧ̑зи съ ни́ми, глаго́люще: и҆ны̑ѧ сп҃сѐ, да сп҃се́тъ и҆ себѐ, а҆́ще то́й є҆́сть хрⷭ҇то́съ бж҃їй и҆збра́нный. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And the soldiers also mocked him, coming to him, and offering him vinegar, | Рꙋга́хꙋсѧ же є҆мꙋ̀ и҆ во́ини, пристꙋпа́юще и҆ ѻ҆́цетъ придѣ́юще є҆мꙋ̀, |
|
37
|
37
|
| and saying, If thou art the King of the Jews, save thyself. | и҆ глаго́лахꙋ: а҆́ще ты̀ є҆сѝ цр҃ь і҆ꙋде́йскъ, сп҃си́сѧ са́мъ. |
|
38
|
38
|
| And there was also a superscription written over him in letters of Greek, and Latin, and Hebrew, THIS IS THE KING OF THE JEWS. | Бѣ́ же и҆ написа́нїе напи́сано над̾ ни́мъ писмены̀ є҆́ллинскими и҆ ри́мскими и҆ є҆вре́йскими: се́й є҆́сть цр҃ь і҆ꙋде́йскъ. |
|
39
|
39
|
| And one of the malefactors that were hanged railed on him, saying, If thou art the Christ, save thyself and us. | Є҆ди́нъ же ѿ ѡ҆бѣ̑шеною ѕлодѣ̑ю хꙋ́лѧше є҆го̀, глаго́лѧ: а҆́ще ты̀ є҆сѝ хрⷭ҇то́съ, сп҃сѝ себѐ и҆ на́ю. |
|
40
|
40
|
| But the other answering rebuked him, saying, Dost thou not even fear God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation? | Ѿвѣща́въ же дрꙋгі́й преща́ше є҆мꙋ̀, глаго́лѧ: ни лѝ ты̀ бои́шисѧ бг҃а, ꙗ҆́кѡ въ то́мже ѡ҆сꙋжде́нъ є҆сѝ; |
|
41
|
41
|
| And we indeed justly; for we receive the due reward of our deeds: but this man hath done nothing amiss. | и҆ мы̀ оу҆́бѡ въ пра́вдꙋ: достѡ́йнаѧ бо по дѣлѡ́мъ на́ю воспрїе́млева: се́й же ни є҆ди́нагѡ ѕла̀ сотворѝ. |
|
42
|
42
|
| And he said unto Jesus, Remember me, Lord, when thou comest in thy kingdom. | И҆ глаго́лаше і҆и҃сови: помѧни́ мѧ, гдⷭ҇и, є҆гда̀ прїи́деши во црⷭ҇твїи сѝ. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And Jesus said unto him, Verily I say unto thee, Today shalt thou be with me in Paradise. | И҆ речѐ є҆мꙋ̀ і҆и҃съ: а҆ми́нь гл҃ю тебѣ̀, дне́сь со мно́ю бꙋ́деши въ раѝ. |
|
44
|
44
|
| And it was about the sixth hour, and a darkness came over the whole land until the ninth hour. | Бѣ́ же ча́съ ꙗ҆́кѡ шесты́й, и҆ тма̀ бы́сть по все́й землѝ до часа̀ девѧ́тагѡ: |
|
45
|
45
|
| And the sun was darkened, and the veil of the temple was rent in the midst. | и҆ поме́рче со́лнце, и҆ завѣ́са церко́внаѧ раздра́сѧ посредѣ̀. |
|
46
|
46
|
| And Jesus, crying with a loud voice, said, Father, into thy hands will I commend my spirit: and having said these things, he gave up the ghost. | И҆ возгла́шь гла́сомъ ве́лїимъ і҆и҃съ, речѐ: ѻ҆́ч҃е, въ рꙋ́цѣ твоѝ предаю̀ дх҃ъ мо́й. И҆ сїѧ̑ ре́къ и҆́здше. |
|
47
|
47
|
| And when the centurion saw what was done, he glorified God, saying, Certainly this was a righteous man. | Ви́дѣвъ же со́тникъ бы́вшее, просла́ви бг҃а, глаго́лѧ: вои́стиннꙋ чл҃вѣ́къ се́й првⷣнъ бѣ̀. |
|
48
|
48
|
| And all the multitudes that came together to this sight, beholding the things that were done, returned smiting their breasts. | И҆ всѝ прише́дшїи наро́ди на позо́ръ се́й, ви́дѧще быва̑ющаѧ, бїю́ще пє́рси своѧ̑ возвраща́хꙋсѧ. |
|
49
|
49
|
| And all his acquaintance, and the women that had followed with him from Galilee, stood afar off, seeing these things. | Стоѧ́хꙋ же всѝ зна́емїи є҆гѡ̀ и҆здале́ча, и҆ жєны̀ спослѣ́дствовавшыѧ є҆мꙋ̀ ѿ галїле́и, зрѧ́щѧ сїѧ̑. |
|
50
|
50
|
| And behold, a man named Joseph, who was a councilor, a good and righteous man | И҆ сѐ, мꙋ́жъ и҆́менемъ і҆ѡ́сифъ, совѣ́тникъ сы́й, мꙋ́жъ бл҃гъ и҆ првⷣнъ, |
|
51
|
51
|
| (he had not consented to their counsel and deed), a man of Arimathea, a city of the Jews, who also himself was looking for the kingdom of God: | се́й не бѣ̀ приста́лъ совѣ́тꙋ и҆ дѣ́лꙋ и҆́хъ, ѿ а҆рїмаѳе́а гра́да і҆ꙋде́йска, и҆́же ча́ѧше и҆ са́мъ црⷭ҇твїѧ бж҃їѧ: |
|
52
|
52
|
| this man went to Pilate, and asked for the body of Jesus. | се́й пристꙋ́пль къ пїла́тꙋ, просѝ тѣлесѐ і҆и҃сова: |
|
53
|
53
|
| And he took it down, and wrapped it in a linen cloth, and laid it in a tomb that was hewn in stone, where never man had yet lain. | и҆ сне́мъ є҆̀ ѡ҆бви́тъ плащани́цею, и҆ положѝ є҆̀ во гро́бѣ и҆зсѣ́ченѣ, въ не́мже не бѣ̀ никто́же никогда́же положе́нъ. |
|
54
|
54
|
| And that day was the Preparation; the sabbath drew on. | И҆ де́нь бѣ̀ пѧто́къ, и҆ сꙋббѡ́та свѣта́ше. |
|
55
|
55
|
| And the women, who had come with him out of Galilee, followed after, and beheld the tomb, and how his body was laid. | Вⸯслѣ́дъ же шє́дшыѧ жєны̀, ꙗ҆̀же бѧ́хꙋ пришлѝ съ ни́мъ ѿ галїле́и, ви́дѣша гро́бъ, и҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ положе́но бы́сть тѣ́ло є҆гѡ̀: |
|
56
|
56
|
| And they returned, and prepared spices and ointments. And on the sabbath they rested according to the commandment. | возвра́щшѧсѧ же оу҆гото́ваша а҆рѡма́ты и҆ мѵ́ро: и҆ въ сꙋббѡ́тꙋ оу҆́бѡ оу҆молча́ша по за́повѣди. |
|
Chapter 24
|
Глава́ к҃д
|
|
1
|
1
|
| But on the first day of the week, at early dawn, they came unto the tomb, bringing the spices which they had prepared, and certain others with them. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃в҃і҃.) Во є҆ди́нꙋ же ѿ сꙋббѡ́тъ ѕѣлѡ̀ ра́нѡ прїидо́ша на гро́бъ, носѧ́щѧ ꙗ҆̀же оу҆гото́ваша а҆рѡма́ты: и҆ дрꙋгі̑ѧ съ ни́ми: |
|
2
|
2
|
| And they found the stone rolled away from the tomb. | ѡ҆брѣто́ша же ка́мень ѿвале́нъ ѿ гро́ба, |
|
3
|
3
|
| And they entered in, and found not the body of the Lord Jesus. | и҆ вше́дшѧ не ѡ҆брѣто́ша тѣлесѐ гдⷭ҇а і҆и҃са. |
|
4
|
4
|
| And it came to pass, while they were much perplexed thereabout, behold, two men stood by them in dazzling garments: | И҆ бы́сть не домышлѧ́ющымсѧ и҆̀мъ ѡ҆ се́мъ, и҆ сѐ мꙋ̑жа два̀ ста́ста пред̾ ни́ми въ ри́захъ блеща́щихсѧ. |
|
5
|
5
|
| and as they were affrighted and bowed down their face to the earth, they said unto them, Why seek ye the living among the dead? | Пристра̑шнымъ же бы́вшымъ и҆̀мъ и҆ покло́ншымъ ли́ца на зе́млю, реко́ста къ ни̑мъ: что̀ и҆́щете жива́го съ ме́ртвыми; |
|
6
|
6
|
| He is not here, but is risen: remember how he spake unto you when he was yet in Galilee, | нѣ́сть здѣ̀, но воста̀: помѧни́те, ꙗ҆́коже гл҃а ва́мъ, є҆щѐ сы́й въ галїле́и, |
|
7
|
7
|
| saying that the Son of man must be delivered up into the hands of sinful men, and be crucified, and the third day rise again. | глаго́лѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ подоба́етъ сн҃ꙋ чл҃вѣ́ческомꙋ пре́данꙋ бы́ти въ рꙋ́цѣ человѣ̑къ грѣ̑шникъ, и҆ пропѧ́тꙋ бы́ти, и҆ въ тре́тїй де́нь воскре́снꙋти. |
|
8
|
8
|
| And they remembered his words, | И҆ помѧнꙋ́ша гл҃го́лы є҆гѡ̀: |
|
9
|
9
|
| and returned from the tomb, and told all these things to the eleven, and to all the rest. | и҆ возвра́щшѧсѧ ѿ гро́ба, возвѣсти́ша всѧ̑ сїѧ̑ є҆диномꙋна́десѧте и҆ всѣ́мъ про́чымъ. |
|
10
|
10
|
| Now it was Mary Magdalene, and Joanna, and Mary the mother of James, and the other women with them, who told these things unto the apostles. | Бѧ́ше же магдали́на марі́а и҆ і҆ѡа́нна и҆ марі́а і҆а́кѡвлѧ, и҆ про́чыѧ съ ни́ми, ꙗ҆̀же глаго́лахꙋ ко а҆пⷭ҇лѡмъ сїѧ̑. |
|
11
|
11
|
| And their words appeared in their sight as idle talk; and they disbelieved them. | И҆ ꙗ҆ви́шасѧ пред̾ ни́ми ꙗ҆́кѡ лжа̀ глаго́лы и҆́хъ, и҆ не вѣ́ровахꙋ и҆̀мъ. |
|
12
|
12
|
| But Peter arose, and ran unto the tomb; and stooping and looking in, he seeth the linen cloths lying by themselves; and he departed to his own home, wondering at that which was come to pass. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃г҃і҃.) Пе́тръ же воста́въ течѐ ко гро́бꙋ, и҆ прини́къ ви́дѣ ри̑зы є҆ди̑ны лежа́щѧ: и҆ ѿи́де, въ себѣ̀ дивѧ́сѧ бы́вшемꙋ. |
|
13
|
13
|
| And behold, two of them were going that very day to a village named Emmaus, which was threescore furlongs from Jerusalem. | И҆ сѐ два̀ ѿ ни́хъ бѣ́ста и҆дꙋ̑ща въ то́йже де́нь въ ве́сь, ѿстоѧ́щꙋ ста́дїй шестьдесѧ́тъ ѿ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ма, є҆́йже и҆́мѧ є҆ммаꙋ́съ: |
|
14
|
14
|
| And they communed with each other of all these things which had happened. | и҆ та̑ бесѣ́доваста къ себѣ̀ ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ си́хъ приклю́чшихсѧ. |
|
15
|
15
|
| And it came to pass, while they communed and questioned together, that Jesus himself drew near, and went with them. | И҆ бы́сть бесѣ́дꙋющема и҆́ма и҆ совопроша́ющемасѧ, и҆ са́мъ і҆и҃съ прибли́живсѧ и҆дѧ́ше съ ни́ма: |
|
16
|
16
|
| But their eyes were holden that they should not know him. | ѻ҆́чи же є҆ю̀ держа́стѣсѧ, да є҆гѡ̀ не позна́ета. |
|
17
|
17
|
| And he said unto them, What communications are these that ye have one with another, as ye walk and are looking sad? | Рече́ же къ ни́ма: что̀ сꙋ́ть словеса̀ сїѧ̑, ѡ҆ ни́хже стѧза́етасѧ къ себѣ̀ и҆дꙋ̑ща, и҆ є҆ста̀ дрѧ̑хла; |
|
18
|
18
|
| And the one, whose name was Cleopas, answered and said unto him, Dost thou alone sojourn in Jerusalem and not know the things which are come to pass there in these days? | Ѿвѣща́въ же є҆ди́нъ, є҆мꙋ́же и҆́мѧ клео́па, речѐ къ немꙋ̀: ты́ ли є҆ди́нъ пришле́цъ є҆сѝ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, и҆ не оу҆вѣ́дѣлъ є҆сѝ бы́вшихъ въ не́мъ во дни̑ сїѧ̑; |
|
19
|
19
|
| And he said unto them, What things? And they said unto him, The things concerning Jesus of Nazareth, who was a prophet mighty in deed and word before God and all the people: | И҆ речѐ и҆́ма: кі́ихъ; Ѡ҆́на же рѣ́ста є҆мꙋ̀: ꙗ҆̀же ѡ҆ і҆и҃сѣ назарѧни́нѣ, и҆́же бы́сть мꙋ́жъ прⷪ҇ро́къ, си́ленъ дѣ́ломъ и҆ сло́вомъ пред̾ бг҃омъ и҆ всѣ́ми людьмѝ: |
|
20
|
20
|
| and how the chief priests and our rulers delivered him up to be condemned to death, and crucified him. | ка́кѡ преда́ша є҆го̀ а҆рхїерє́и и҆ кнѧ̑зи на́ши на ѡ҆сꙋжде́нїе сме́рти, и҆ распѧ́ша є҆го̀: |
|
21
|
21
|
| But we hoped that it was he who should redeem Israel: and besides all this, today is now the third day since these things came to pass. | мы́ же надѣ́ѧхомсѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ се́й є҆́сть хотѧ̀ и҆зба́вити і҆и҃лѧ: но и҆ над̾ всѣ́ми си́ми, тре́тїй се́й де́нь є҆́сть дне́сь, ѿне́лиже сїѧ̑ бы́ша. |
|
22
|
22
|
| Moreover certain women of our company amazed us, having been early at the tomb; | Но и҆ жєны̀ нѣ̑кїѧ ѿ на́съ оу҆жаси́ша ны̀, бы́вшыѧ ра́нѡ оу҆ гро́ба: |
|
23
|
23
|
| and when they found not his body, they came, saying, that they had also seen a vision of angels, who said that he was alive. | и҆ не ѡ҆брѣ́тшѧ тѣлесѐ є҆гѡ̀, прїидо́ша, глаго́лющѧ, ꙗ҆́кѡ и҆ ꙗ҆вле́нїе а҆́гг҃лъ ви́дѣша, и҆̀же глаго́лютъ є҆го̀ жи́ва. |
|
24
|
24
|
| And certain of them that were with us went to the tomb, and found it even so as the women also had said: but him they saw not. | И҆ и҆до́ша нѣ́цыи ѿ на́съ ко гро́бꙋ, и҆ ѡ҆брѣто́ша та́кѡ, ꙗ҆́коже и҆ жєны̀ рѣ́ша: самагѡ́ же не ви́дѣша. |
|
25
|
25
|
| And he said unto them, O foolish men, and slow of heart to believe in all that the prophets have spoken! | И҆ то́й речѐ къ ни́ма: ѽ несмы́слєннаѧ и҆ кѡ́снаѧ се́рдцемъ, є҆́же вѣ́ровати ѡ҆ всѣ́хъ, ꙗ҆̀же глаго́лаша прⷪ҇ро́цы: |
|
26
|
26
|
| Behooved it not the Christ to suffer these things, and to enter into his glory? | не сїѧ̑ ли подоба́ше пострада́ти хрⷭ҇тꙋ̀ и҆ вни́ти въ сла́вꙋ свою̀; |
|
27
|
27
|
| And beginning from Moses and from all the prophets, he interpreted to them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself. | И҆ наче́нъ ѿ мѡѷсе́а и҆ ѿ всѣ́хъ прⷪ҇рѡ́къ, сказа́ше и҆́ма ѿ всѣ́хъ писа́нїй ꙗ҆̀же ѡ҆ не́мъ. |
|
28
|
28
|
| And they drew nigh unto the village, whither they were going: and he made as though he would go further. | И҆ прибли́жишасѧ въ ве́сь, въ ню́же и҆дѧ́ста: и҆ то́й творѧ́шесѧ далеча́йше и҆тѝ. |
|
29
|
29
|
| And they constrained him, saying, Abide with us; for it is toward evening, and the day is far spent. And he went in to abide with them. | И҆ нꙋ́ждаста є҆го̀, глагѡ́люща: ѡ҆блѧ́зи съ на́ма, ꙗ҆́кѡ къ ве́черꙋ є҆́сть, и҆ приклони́лсѧ є҆́сть де́нь. И҆ вни́де съ ни́ма ѡ҆блещѝ. |
|
30
|
30
|
| And it came to pass, when he had sat down with them to meat, he took the bread and blessed; and breaking it he gave to them. | И҆ бы́сть ꙗ҆́кѡ возлежѐ съ ни́ма, и҆ прїи́мъ хлѣ́бъ блгⷭ҇вѝ, и҆ преломи́въ даѧ́ше и҆́ма: |
|
31
|
31
|
| And their eyes were opened, and they knew him; and he vanished out of their sight. | ѻ҆́нѣма же ѿверзо́стѣсѧ ѻ҆́чи, и҆ позна́ста є҆го̀: и҆ то́й неви́димь бы́сть и҆́ма. |
|
32
|
32
|
| And they said one to another, Was not our heart burning within us, while he spake to us in the way, and while he opened to us the scriptures? | И҆ реко́ста къ себѣ̀: не се́рдце ли на́ю горѧ̀ бѣ̀ въ на́ю, є҆гда̀ гл҃аше на́ма на пꙋтѝ и҆ є҆гда̀ ска́зоваше на́ма писа̑нїѧ; |
|
33
|
33
|
| And they rose up that very hour, and returned to Jerusalem, and found the eleven gathered together, and them that were with them, | И҆ воста̑вша въ то́й ча́съ, возврати́стасѧ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ, и҆ ѡ҆брѣто́ста совокꙋ́пленныхъ є҆динона́десѧте и҆ и҆̀же бѧ́хꙋ съ ни́ми, |
|
34
|
34
|
| saying, The Lord is risen indeed, and hath appeared to Simon. | глаго́лющихъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ вои́стиннꙋ воста̀ гдⷭ҇ь и҆ ꙗ҆ви́сѧ сі́мѡнꙋ. |
|
35
|
35
|
| And they rehearsed the things that happened in the way, and how he was known of them in the breaking of the bread. | И҆ та̑ повѣ́даста, ꙗ҆̀же бы́ша на пꙋтѝ, и҆ ꙗ҆́кѡ позна́сѧ и҆́ма въ преломле́нїи хлѣ́ба. |
|
36
|
36
|
| And as they spake these things, Jesus himself stood in the midst of them, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you. | (Заⷱ҇ р҃д҃і҃.) Сїѧ̑ же и҆̀мъ глаго́лющымъ, (и҆) са́мъ і҆и҃съ ста̀ посредѣ̀ и҆́хъ, и҆ гл҃а и҆̀мъ: ми́ръ ва́мъ. |
|
37
|
37
|
| But they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they beheld a spirit. | Оу҆боѧ́вшесѧ же и҆ пристра́шни бы́вше, мнѧ́хꙋ дꙋ́хъ ви́дѣти: |
|
38
|
38
|
| And he said unto them, Why are ye troubled? and wherefore do questionings arise in your hearts? | и҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ: что̀ смꙋще́ни є҆стѐ; и҆ почто̀ помышлє́нїѧ вхо́дѧтъ въ сердца̀ ва̑ша; |
|
39
|
39
|
| See my hands and my feet, that it is I myself: handle me, and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye behold me having. | ви́дите рꙋ́цѣ моѝ и҆ но́зѣ моѝ, ꙗ҆́кѡ са́мъ а҆́зъ є҆́смь: ѡ҆сѧжи́те мѧ̀ и҆ ви́дите: ꙗ҆́кѡ дꙋ́хъ пло́ти и҆ ко́сти не и҆́мать, ꙗ҆́коже менѐ ви́дите и҆мꙋ́ща. |
|
40
|
40
|
| And when he had said this, he showed them his hands and his feet. | И҆ сїѐ ре́къ, показа̀ и҆̀мъ рꙋ́цѣ и҆ но́зѣ. |
|
41
|
41
|
| And while they still disbelieved for joy, and wondered, he said unto them, Have ye here anything to eat? | Є҆ще́ же невѣ́рꙋющымъ и҆̀мъ ѿ ра́дости и҆ чꙋдѧ́щымсѧ, речѐ и҆̀мъ: и҆́мате ли что̀ снѣ́дно здѣ̀; |
|
42
|
42
|
| And they gave him a piece of a broiled fish, and of a honeycomb. | Ѻ҆ни́ же да́ша є҆мꙋ̀ ры́бы пече́ны ча́сть и҆ ѿ пче́лъ со́тъ. |
|
43
|
43
|
| And he took them, and ate before them. | И҆ взе́мъ пред̾ ни́ми ꙗ҆дѐ, |
|
44
|
44
|
| And he said unto them, These are the words which I spake unto you, while I was yet with you, that all things must needs be fulfilled, which are written in the law of Moses, and the prophets, and the psalms, concerning me. | рече́ же и҆̀мъ: сїѧ̑ сꙋ́ть словеса̀, ꙗ҆̀же гл҃ахъ къ ва́мъ є҆щѐ сы́й съ ва́ми, ꙗ҆́кѡ подоба́етъ сконча́тисѧ всѣ̑мъ напи̑саннымъ въ зако́нѣ мѡѷсе́овѣ и҆ прⷪ҇ро́цѣхъ и҆ ѱалмѣ́хъ ѡ҆ мнѣ̀. |
|
45
|
45
|
| Then opened he their mind, that they might understand the scriptures; | Тогда̀ ѿве́рзе и҆̀мъ оу҆́мъ разꙋмѣ́ти писа̑нїѧ |
|
46
|
46
|
| and he said unto them, Thus it is written, and thus it behooved the Christ to suffer, and rise again from the dead the third day; | и҆ речѐ и҆̀мъ, ꙗ҆́кѡ та́кѡ пи́сано є҆́сть, и҆ та́кѡ подоба́ше пострада́ти хрⷭ҇тꙋ̀ и҆ воскрⷭ҇нꙋти ѿ ме́ртвыхъ въ тре́тїй де́нь, |
|
47
|
47
|
| and that repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name unto all the nations, beginning from Jerusalem. | и҆ проповѣ́датисѧ во и҆́мѧ є҆гѡ̀ покаѧ́нїю и҆ ѿпꙋще́нїю грѣхѡ́въ во всѣ́хъ ꙗ҆зы́цѣхъ, наче́нше ѿ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́ма: |
|
48
|
48
|
| And ye are witnesses of these things. | вы́ же є҆стѐ свидѣ́телїе си̑мъ: |
|
49
|
49
|
| And behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you: but tarry ye in the city of Jerusalem, until ye be clothed with power from on high. | и҆ сѐ, а҆́зъ послю̀ ѡ҆бѣтова́нїе ѻ҆ц҃а̀ моегѡ̀ на вы̀: вы́ же сѣди́те во гра́дѣ і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мстѣ, до́ндеже ѡ҆блече́тесѧ си́лою свы́ше. |
|
50
|
50
|
| And he led them out as far as to Bethany: and he lifted up his hands, and blessed them. | И҆зве́дъ же и҆̀хъ во́нъ до виѳа́нїи и҆ воздви́гъ рꙋ́цѣ своѝ, (и҆) блгⷭ҇вѝ и҆̀хъ. |
|
51
|
51
|
| And it came to pass, while he blessed them, he parted from them, and was carried up into heaven. | И҆ бы́сть є҆гда̀ блгⷭ҇влѧ́ше и҆̀хъ, ѿстꙋпѝ ѿ ни́хъ и҆ возноша́шесѧ на не́бо. |
|
52
|
52
|
| And they worshiped him, and returned to Jerusalem with great joy: | И҆ ті́и поклони́шасѧ є҆мꙋ̀ и҆ возврати́шасѧ во і҆ерⷭ҇ли́мъ съ ра́достїю вели́кою: |
|
53
|
53
|
| and were continually in the temple, praising and blessing God. Amen. | и҆ бѧ́хꙋ вы́нꙋ въ це́ркви, хва́лѧще и҆ благословѧ́ще бг҃а. А҆ми́нь. |
Old Testament
• Gen. • Exod. • Lev. • Num. • Deut.
• Josh. • Judg. • Ruth • 1 Sam. • 2 Sam. • 1 Kgs. • 2 Kgs. • 1 Chr. • 2 Chr. • Ezra • 2 Ezra • 3 Ezra • Neh. • Tob. • Jud. • Esth. • 1 Mac. • 2 Mac. • 3 Mac.
• Job • Ps. • Prov. • Eccl. • Song • Wisd. • Sir.
• Isa. • Jer. • Lam. • Let. Jer. • Bar. • Ezek. • Dan.
• Hos. • Joel • Amos • Obad. • Jonah • Mic. • Nah. • Hab. • Zeph. • Hag. • Zech. • Mal.